ambrose_n to_o confute_v julian_n the_o pelagian_a heretic_n say_v 2._o say_v l._n 1._o cont_n julia._n pelag._n c._n 2._o here_o be_v ambrose_n of_o milan_n who_o thy_o master_n pelagius_n so_o high_o commend_v as_o to_o say_v that_o in_o his_o book_n chief_o the_o roman_a faith_n do_v shine_v so_o that_o his_o very_a enemy_n dare_v not_o reprehend_v his_o faith_n and_o most_o pure_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n who_o see_v not_o that_o s._n augustine_n here_o by_o the_o roman_a faith_n understand_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o therefore_o speak_v again_o of_o the_o great_a constancy_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o danger_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o say_v 2._o say_v cont._n julian_n pelag._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o the_o roman_a world_n doubt_v not_o to_o magnify_v they_o with_o he_o where_o again_o by_o the_o roman_a world_n he_o understand_v all_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n the_o same_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o s._n hierome_n 1._o hierome_n apol._n advers_a ruffin_n l._n 1._o what_o faith_n say_v he_o do_v ruffinus_n call_v his_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v or_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o origen_n book_n if_o he_o answer_v that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v then_o be_v we_o catholic_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n to_o acatius_n bishop_n of_o berone_n and_o other_o his_o colleague_n to_o who_o he_o say_v 10._o say_v in_o synod_n ephes_n to_o 5._o c._n 10._o it_o become_v your_o holiness_n to_o ask_v these_o thing_n of_o god_n earnest_o and_o by_o manifest_a token_n to_o show_v yourselves_o approve_v priest_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o palladius_n chrysostomi_n palladius_n in_o vita_fw-la chrysostomi_n who_o write_v of_o theodorus_n tyanaeus_n that_o he_o fortify_v his_o bishopric_n with_o a_o wall_n of_o piety_n by_o persevere_v till_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a roman_n of_o who_o paul_n give_v testimony_n say_v your_o faith_n be_v renown_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o what_o victor_n of_o tunes_n report_v of_o vitalianus_n a_o scythian_a anastas_n scythian_a in_o anastas_n namely_o that_o he_o take_v arm_n against_o anastasius_n the_o emperor_n and_o will_v never_o promise_v peace_n unto_o he_o but_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v unite_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o roman_a which_o plain_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o abiur_v the_o memory_n of_o acatius_n say_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n epist_n ad_fw-la hormisd_v we_o hope_v to_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n with_o you_o declare_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a in_o which_o there_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o perfect_a solidity_n and_o we_o promise_v not_o to_o recite_v hereafter_o in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n send_v to_o agapetus_n pope_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o 417.420_o by_o ep._n ad_fw-la agapet_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 417.420_o s._n augustine_n testify_v 157._o testify_v ep._n 157._o that_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la by_o mean_n of_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n have_v be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v yea_o even_o by_o two_o of_o they_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o pope_n zozimus_n and_o that_o s._n augustine_n by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a understand_v the_o catholic_a church_n possidius_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n declare_v 18._o declare_v in_o vita_fw-la aug._n c._n 18._o call_v the_o sentence_n pronounce_v by_o these_o pope_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la iudicium_fw-la the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n innocentius_n say_v he_o and_o zozimus_fw-la in_o their_o several_a time_n censure_v the_o pelagian_o and_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n by_o their_o letter_n address_v to_o the_o african_a church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n command_v they_o to_o be_v anathematise_v and_o avoid_v by_o all_o catholic_n and_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n honorius_n hear_v of_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n pronounce_v against_o they_o condemn_v they_o also_o by_o his_o law_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v rank_v among_o heretic_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o gelasius_n apocryph_n gelasius_n in_o decret_a de_fw-fr scriptor_n apocryph_n a_o african_a bear_v and_o it_o be_v think_v a_o disciple_n of_o s._n augustine_n testify_v that_o the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n have_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o church_n by_o any_o synodical_a constitution_n but_o have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n prosper_n s._n augustine_n second_o soul_n say_v 5_o say_v l._n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o predict_v dei_fw-la part_n 4._o c._n 5_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n found_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n where_o they_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n they_o deliver_v it_o to_o their_o successor_n peaceable_a and_o free_a from_o division_n the_o christian_a that_o communicate_v with_o this_o general_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a but_o if_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o two_o famous_a doctor_n of_o the_o african_a church_n s_o fulgentius_n and_o primasius_n with_o other_o their_o fellow-bishop_n 220._o in_o number_n who_o be_v banish_v by_o the_o arian_n king_n trasamundus_n out_o of_o africa_n into_o sardinia_n write_v from_o thence_o a_o synodical_a epistle_n to_o the_o catholic_n of_o africa_n in_o which_o they_o exhort_v they_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o pelagianism_n to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o s._n augustine_n of_o which_o say_v they_o 152._o they_o extat_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patr._n edit_fw-la colon._n to_o 6._o part_n 1._o pag._n 152._o hormisdas_n of_o bless_a memory_n a_o glorious_a bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v make_v mention_n with_o great_a commendation_n of_o catholic_a praise_n in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o consultation_n of_o possessor_n our_o holy_a brother_n and_o fellow-bishop_n his_o word_n be_v these_o what_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v and_o observe_v concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v full_o know_v out_o of_o diverse_a book_n of_o bless_a augustine_n &_o chief_o those_o which_o he_o write_v to_o prosper_v &_o hilary_n these_o their_o word_n convince_v that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o ancient_a and_o holy_a pope_n hormisdas_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o africa_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v synonima_n betoken_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o set_v down_o the_o form_n of_o abjuration_n which_o all_o bishop_n return_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o make_v express_v it_o in_o these_o word_n 30._o word_n l._n 1._o epist_n 30._o i_o bishop_n of_o n._n have_v discern_v the_o trap_n of_o division_n wherein_o i_o be_v catch_v be_o return_v by_o god_n grace_n with_o my_o pure_a and_o free_a will_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o i_o vow_v and_o promise_n that_o i_o will_v never_o return_v to_o schism_n but_o always_o remain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o profession_n show_v that_o as_o now_o it_o be_v so_o than_o it_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v no_o less_o than_o open_a schism_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o like_a profession_n make_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n be_v afterward_o send_v by_o adrian_n the_o second_o to_o the_o eight_o council_n general_a and_o be_v read_v in_o the_o first_o action_n be_v approve_v and_o praise_v by_o all_o the_o father_n thereof_o 199._o thereof_o act._n 1._o apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 3.881.913_o &_o
to_o resist_v all_o novelty_n with_o such_o constancy_n as_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o one_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o permit_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o who_o the_o church_n have_v long_o since_o condemn_v come_v to_o be_v bear_v again_o 6._o eugenius_n another_o successor_n to_o aurelius_n be_v press_v by_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o hunericus_n lord_n of_o africa_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o public_a disputation_n with_o the_o arian_n answer_v 2._o answer_v victor_n vtic._n l._n 2._o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o without_o write_v to_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n 7._o s._n fulgentius_n say_v 11._o say_v de_fw-fr incarn_n &_o great_a c._n 11._o which_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n holdesh_n and_o teach_v and_o with_o her_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n do_v both_o without_o hesitation_n believe_v to_o justice_n and_o also_o doubt_v not_o to_o confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o when_o the_o same_o saint_n be_v go_v to_o the_o wildrnesse_n of_o thebais_n in_o egypt_n to_o fast_o pat._n fast_o author_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n fulg._n c._n 12._o to_o 6._o bibliothec_n pat._n he_o desist_v from_o his_o intent_n when_o come_v to_o sicily_n he_o understand_v from_o eulalius_n b._n of_o syracuse_n that_o those_o country_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n lest_o desire_v a_o more_o perfect_a life_n he_o shall_v run_v hazard_n of_o lose_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o instead_o of_o gong_a into_o egypt_n he_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o rome_n to_o visit_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n peter_n &_o paul_n 8._o the_o african_a bishop_n consult_v s._n leo_n the_o great_a in_o their_o doubt_n of_o faith_n and_o s._n leo_n write_v to_o they_o a_o famous_a decretal_a epistle_n 87._o epistle_n leo_fw-la ep_n 87._o 9_o almost_o all_o the_o african_a bishop_n 220._o in_o number_n be_v banish_v into_o sardinia_n by_o thrasimundus_n the_o arian_n king_n symmachus_n pope_n relieve_v &_o maintain_v they_o at_o his_o own_o charge_n roman_n charge_n paul_n diac._n l._n 17._o rerum_fw-la roman_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o his_o communion_n 10._o possessor_n a_o famous_a african_a bishop_n write_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n ep._n add_v hormisd_v it_o be_v fit_a and_o expedient_a that_o we_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o herd_n as_o often_o as_o the_o health_n of_o the_o member_n be_v treat_v of_o for_o who_o have_v great_a solicitude_n of_o his_o subject_n or_o from_o who_o be_v more_o to_o be_v require_v the_o stability_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v waver_v then_o from_o the_o precedent_n of_o that_o seat_n who_o first_o governor_n hear_v from_o christ._n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 11._o victor_n bishop_n of_o utica_n report_v vandal_n report_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr persecut_n vandal_n that_o the_o arian_n in_o africa_n do_v call_v the_o catholic_n roman_n as_o you_o now_o call_v we_o romanist_n which_o they_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n then_o because_o the_o african_a catholic_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n 12._o and_o that_o the_o possession_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o of_o appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v not_o interrupt_v by_o the_o sixth_o conncell_n of_o carthage_n be_v prouâd_v out_o of_o ferrandus_fw-la a_o deacon_n of_o that_o church_n 60._o church_n breviar_n can._n art_n 59_o &_o 60._o which_o live_v soon_o after_o that_o time_n &_o have_v register_v in_o his_o collection_n of_o canon_n this_o as_o the_o five_o &_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n that_o a_o condemn_a bishop_n may_v if_o he_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o that_o during_o the_o appeal_n no_o other_o can_v be_v ordain_v in_o his_o place_n by_o these_o and_o many_o other_o evidence_n which_o may_v be_v produce_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o this_o controversy_n of_o appeal_v the_o african_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o therefore_o to_o affirm_v as_o you_o do_v that_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 100_o year_n until_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n for_o all_o the_o example_n here_o allege_v be_v of_o african_a bishop_n that_o live_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o 100_o year_n after_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n against_o this_o truth_n confirm_v by_o so_o many_o evident_a and_o undeniable_a proof_n that_o the_o african_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o aurelius_n primate_n of_o africa_n and_o s._n augustine_n sever_v by_o schism_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o urge_v the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o african_a church_n be_v in_o his_o day_n reconcile_v unto_o they_o roman_z in_o the_o body_n of_o your_o counsel_n say_v 148._o say_v pag._n 148._o you_o there_o be_v 1057._o be_v apud_fw-la suriumtom_n 2._o council_n pag._n 384._o so_o you_o quote_v he_o false_o for_o it_o be_v tom._n 1._o council_n pag._n 1057._o extant_a the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o about_o the_o year_n 606._o the_o same_o pope_n complain_v that_o aurelius_n with_o his_o fellow-bishop_n of_o africa_n with_o who_o s._n augustine_n do_v consent_n have_v by_o the_o instigation_n of_o satan_n for_o so_o the_o epistle_n speak_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n until_o now_o after_o a_o hundred_o year_n space_n eulalius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n acknowledge_v his_o offence_n seek_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o far_o the_o epistle_n of_o your_o pope_n do_v you_o belicue_v this_o epistle_n concern_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n then_o have_v you_o best_o stand_v aside_o a_o while_n for_o scare_v of_o knock_n for_o behold_v there_o be_v at_o hand_n child_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n angry_a fellow_n that_o lie_v about_o they_o 1._o bellarmine_n 25._o bellarmine_n bellar._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n c._n 25._o i_o great_o suspect_v say_v he_o that_o this_o epistle_n be_v counterfeit_a 2._o it_o be_v full_a of_o fraud_n say_v epistolam_fw-la say_v binius_fw-la tom._n 1._o conc._n in_o hanc_fw-la epistolam_fw-la binius_fw-la 3._o which_o say_v baronius_n some_o wicked_a impostor_n have_v feign_v etc._n etc._n do_v not_o you_o believe_v this_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o be_v true_a then_o harken_v to_o your_o 89._o your_o lindan_n panopl_n l._n 4._o c._n 89._o lindan_n this_o epistle_n say_v he_o be_v not_o supposititious_a but_o true_a etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o and_o then_o find_v in_o baronius_n that_o during_o those_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v whole_a troop_n and_o armias_fw-la of_o african_a martyr_n and_o holy_a confessor_n you_o triumph_v and_o bid_v we_o take_v 150._o take_v pag._n 150._o this_o your_o syllogism_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o no_o true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n diverse_a true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n ergo_fw-la diverse_a die_a out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n die_v not_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n thus_o you_o dispute_v in_o your_o fancy_n victorious_o as_o have_v by_o this_o your_o discourse_n and_o syllogism_n knock_v the_o roman_a church_n on_o the_o heal_n i_o shall_v first_o discover_v the_o weakness_n and_o vanity_n of_o your_o syllogism_n then_o show_v the_o multiplicity_n of_o your_o falsity_n and_o fraud_n suppose_a and_o cunning_o contrive_v into_o your_o relation_n of_o the_o story_n last_o lay_v open_v the_o reason_n why_o that_o epistle_n may_v be_v suspect_v yea_o reject_v as_o be_v counterfeit_n in_o your_o sollogisme_n i_o grant_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n that_o no_o true_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n in_o your_o minor_a or_o assumption_n diverse_a true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o distinguish_v sundry_a kind_n of_o disobedience_n first_o there_o be_v disobedience_n heretical_a which_o resist_v the_o doctrine_n &_o decree_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n yea_o deni_v the_o prime_a article_n of_o christian_a unity_n the_o headship_n and_o supreme_a authority_n of_o her_o bishop_n in_o the_o state_n of_o this_o disobedience_n there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a martyrdom_n no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n second_o there_o be_v disobedience_n schismatical_a which_o believe_v firm_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o her_o bishop_n except_v against_o the_o present_a
as_o a_o certain_a note_n or_o mark_v whereby_o orthodoxal_a people_n be_v distinguish_v from_o heretic_n as_o you_o have_v already_o hear_v 2._o hear_v chap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o out_o of_o pacianus_n s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o s._n augustine_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o they_o who_o to_o express_v their_o faith_n have_v take_v new_a name_n as_o the_o arian_n of_o arius_n the_o marcionist_n of_o martion_n the_o pelagian_o of_o pelagius_n the_o donatist_n of_o donatus_n &_o the_o like_a witness_n s._n irenaeus_n 20._o irenaeus_n l._n 1._o c._n 20._o s._n justine_n triphone_n justine_n in_o triphone_n lactantius_n 4.30_o lactantius_n divin_v institut_fw-la l._n 4.30_o s._n athanasius_n arian_n athanasius_n serm._n 1._o cont_n arian_n and_o s._n hierome_n fine_a hierome_n cont._n lucifer_n fine_a have_v be_v know_v thereby_o as_o by_o a_o undoubted_a mark_n to_o be_v heretic_n who_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o take_v new_a name_n know_v that_o the_o ancient_a name_n of_o catholic_a can_v not_o agree_v to_o they_o and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n you_o know_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_n &_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v esteem_v such_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o call_v yourselves_o by_o a_o new_a name_n of_o protestant_n to_o distinguish_v yourselves_o from_o those_o who_o in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v and_o be_v still_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n by_o which_o neither_o we_o nor_o you_o understand_v any_o other_o than_o those_o which_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_a and_o roman_a be_v term_n convertible_a as_o have_v be_v prove_v 3._o prove_v chap._n 1._o sect_n 3._o and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o protestant_n speak_v not_o only_o to_o we_o but_o even_o among_o themselves_o ever_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n as_o know_v that_o by_o catholic_n no_o man_n understand_v any_o other_o but_o they_o that_o before_o luther_n begin_v be_v and_o be_v still_o know_v by_o that_o name_n and_o can_v never_o loose_v the_o possession_n of_o it_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n well_o know_v to_o ancient_a heretic_n who_o therefore_o abhor_v the_o name_n catholic_a so_o do_v gaudentius_n the_o donatist_n call_v it_o 23._o it_o apud_fw-la s._n aug._n l._n 1._o cont_n gaudent_fw-la c._n 23._o a_o humane_a fiction_n so_o do_v other_o heretic_n who_o speak_v in_o the_o lutheran_n language_n say_v 1565._o say_v praefat._n in_o nowm_fw-la testam_fw-la anni_fw-la 1565._o come_v o_o you_o fool_n and_o silly_a wretch_n that_o be_v common_o call_v catholic_n and_o learn_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o lie_v hide_v many_o age_n heretofore_o but_o be_v now_o reveal_v and_o show_v of_o late_a with_o these_o jump_n our_o protestant_n for_o beza_n k_n call_v it_o a_o vain_a word_n doctor_n humphrey_n 113._o humphrey_n in_o vita_fw-la juelli_fw-la p._n 113._o a_o empty_a term_n master_n sutcliffe_n 1._o sutcliffe_n challenge_n pag._n 1._o a_o fruitless_a name_n and_o other_o of_o you_o scoff_n at_o the_o word_n 7._o word_n doctor_n bristol_n motive_n pag._n 7._o nickname_v we_o cacolikes_n and_o cartholikes_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o lutheran_n reject_v a_o allegation_n out_o of_o luther_n because_o say_v they_o 154._o they_o in_o colloq_fw-la altemburg_n anno_o 1568._o pag._n 154._o be_v be_v not_o a_o phrase_n of_o luther_n that_o any_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v catholike_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n as_o lindanus_n dubitant_fw-la lindanus_n in_o dubitant_fw-la observe_v luther_n and_o other_o your_o new_a reformer_n in_o hatred_n of_o that_o name_n have_v corrupt_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o their_o catechism_n instead_o of_o i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n i_o believe_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o you_o english_a protestant_n insist_v in_o their_o step_n for_o the_o good_a will_v you_o bear_v to_o that_o name_n have_v leave_v it_o out_o of_o your_o bibles_n for_o whereas_o eusebius_n 12._o eusebius_n l._n 2._o histo_fw-la c._n 12._o report_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n peter_n john_n and_o jude_n be_v know_v in_o antiquity_n by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a epistle_n and_o therefore_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o instiles_a they_o in_o her_o bibles_n you_o in_o you_o of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o 1577._o which_o be_v yet_o currant_n among_o you_o have_v never_o be_v forbid_v have_v whole_o leave_v out_o that_o name_n and_o though_o since_o that_o time_n you_o have_v be_v admonish_v of_o your_o bad_a deal_n therein_o yet_o still_o in_o all_o your_o late_a bible_n you_o commit_v the_o same_o fault_n use_v the_o profane_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o style_v the_o catholic_a epistle_n the_o general_a epistle_n say_v the_o general_a epistle_n of_o james_n of_o peter_n etc._n etc._n who_o see_v not_o the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o translation_n for_o it_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a to_o translate_v catholic_a general_n as_o if_o when_o s._n hierome_n say_v ruffin_n say_v l._n 1._o apol_n advers_a ruffin_n if_o ruffinus_n call_v his_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n profess_v then_o be_v we_o catholic_n you_o shall_v translate_v then_o be_v we_o general_n or_o who_o s._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n contra_fw-la ep_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o report_v that_o catholic_n travail_v among_o heretic_n to_o distinguish_v their_o own_o church_n from_o heretical_a conventicless_a ask_v qua_fw-la itur_fw-la ad_fw-la catholicam_fw-la which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o shall_v translate_v which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o general_n all_o this_o show_v that_o you_o know_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_n since_o you_o seek_v as_o far_o forth_o as_o you_o can_v to_o suppress_v the_o name_n how_o therefore_o can_v you_o ask_v why_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n john_n and_o jude_n be_v call_v catholic_a as_o well_o as_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o peter_n i_o say_v you_o that_o call_v none_o of_o they_o catholic_a but_o in_o a_o profane_a manner_n general_n epistle_n and_o that_o very_o improper_o if_o not_o also_o false_o for_o some_o of_o they_o as_o the_o two_o last_o of_o s._n john_n be_v not_o write_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o general_n but_o to_o particular_a person_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o catholic_a church_n instile_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n john_n and_o jude_n catholic_a epistle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o peter_n be_v because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v so_o it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n 8._o augustine_n chap._n 12._o sect_n 8._o your_o second_o question_n be_v 81._o be_v pag._n 81._o why_o s._n paul_n be_v so_o sole_a as_o of_o himself_o to_o anathematise_v the_o false_a apostle_n i_o answer_v that_o not_o only_a s._n peter_n but_o each_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o anathematise_v offender_n for_o their_o apostolical_a jurisdiction_n be_v universal_a over_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o yet_o not_o ordinary_a at_o s._n peter_n be_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o descend_v to_o their_o successor_n sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o title_n of_o vicar_n of_o christ_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n your_o three_o question_n be_v 82._o be_v pag._n 82._o why_o s._n paul_n do_v absolve_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n if_o as_o bellarmine_n pretend_v that_o title_n whole_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o argument_n of_o his_o succession_n from_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o argument_n you_o urge_v again_o afterward_o 242._o afterward_o pag._n 242._o as_o of_o principal_a note_n and_o confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n ignatius_n of_o eusebius_n pope_n and_o genebrard_n who_o observe_v that_o tertullian_n call_v paul_n vicar_n of_o christ_n answer_n the_o name_n of_o vicar_n may_v be_v give_v to_o any_o one_o that_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o another_o king_n be_v vicar_n of_o god_n in_o thing_n belong_v to_o civil_a government_n bishop_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v they_o to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 20.28_o god_n act._n 20.28_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v legate_n god_n as_o it_o be_v exhort_v by_o they_o 5.20_o they_o 2._o cor._n 5.20_o and_o thereby_o s._n paul_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n or_o as_o his_o vicar_n as_o the_o rhemist_n expound_v but_o the_o supreme_a vicar_n and_o chief_a lieutenant_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v so_o now_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o
sanders_n visib_n monarch_n l._n 7._o à _fw-la n._n 433._o ad_fw-la 541._o add_v much_o more_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n own_o work_n and_o in_o his_o own_o word_n as_o that_o the_o see_v apostolic_a by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n be_v prefer_v before_o all_o church_n that_o all_o bishop_n if_o any_o fault_n be_v find_v in_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a that_o she_o be_v the_o head_n of_o faith_n &_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a member_n that_o if_o any_o of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n have_v do_v against_o the_o popesletter_n that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n salona_n so_o great_a a_o disobedience_n can_v not_o have_v pass_v without_o a_o most_o grievous_a scandal_n that_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v to_o peter_n be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n that_o no_o scruple_n nor_o doubt_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a that_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v false_a which_o be_v teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o to_o return_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o which_o will_v not_o have_v s._n peter_n to_o who_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n be_v commit_v to_o shut_v he_o out_o from_o the_o entrance_n of_o life_n must_v not_o in_o this_o world_n be_v separate_v from_o his_o see_n that_o they_o be_v perverse_a man_n which_o refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a i_o conclude_v therefore_o with_o doctor_n sanders_n that_o he_o which_o read_v all_o these_o particular_n and_o more_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o work_n of_o s._n gregory_n and_o yet_o with_o a_o brazen_a forehead_n fear_v not_o to_o interpret_v that_o which_o he_o write_v against_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n so_o as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o any_o one_o bishop_n shall_v have_v the_o chief_a seat_n and_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n that_o man_n say_v he_o seem_v to_o i_o either_o to_o have_v cast_v of_o all_o understanding_n and_o sense_n of_o a_o man_n or_o else_o to_o have_v put_v on_o the_o obstinate_a perverseness_n of_o the_o devil_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o urge_v here_o and_o else_o where_o so_o often_o in_o this_o your_o grand_a imposture_n s._n gregory_n refuse_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o disprove_v his_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n especial_o since_o it_o have_v be_v so_o often_o and_o so_o full_o answer_v by_o we_o but_o because_o here_o you_o insist_v so_o much_o thereon_o i_o will_v for_o the_o reader_n satisfaction_n brief_o declare_v in_o what_o sense_n pelagius_n and_o s._n gregory_n refuse_v that_o title_n and_o how_o to_o better_v your_o argument_n you_o abuse_v and_o falsify_v our_o author_n the_o title_n of_o vniversalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la universal_a bishop_n may_v be_v take_v two_o way_n first_o for_o a_o bishop_n that_o challenge_v a_o universal_a power_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n claim_v to_o himself_o a_o right_n of_o hear_v and_o determ_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o his_o own_o and_o their_o diocese_n leave_v they_o no_o other_o right_n to_o exercise_v any_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n &_o power_n but_o only_o such_o as_o they_o shall_v receive_v from_o he_o as_o his_o vicar_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n gregory_n conceive_v john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o style_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o plain_a and_o express_v word_n in_o diverse_a of_o his_o epistle_n 70._o epistle_n l._n 4._o ep_n 32.34_o &_o 36.38_o &_o l._n 7._o ep_n 70._o to_o which_o the_o margin_n will_v direct_v you_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o call_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n a_o profane_a and_o antichristian_a title_n 2._o it_o may_v be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o signification_n with_o episcopus_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la so_o that_o it_o signify_v a_o bishop_n to_o who_o belong_v the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o the_o determine_n of_o all_o such_o cause_n as_o appertain_v to_o she_o in_o general_a without_o take_v away_o or_o hinder_v the_o ordinary_a power_n and_o right_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o leave_v each_o of_o they_o in_o their_o several_a place_n &_o degree_n with_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o judge_v and_o determine_v all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a belong_v to_o their_o diocese_n and_o within_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v not_o condemn_v by_o s._n gregory_n as_o new_a or_o profane_a or_o any_o way_n unlawful_a but_o agree_v to_o the_o pope_n no_o less_o than_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n gregory_n episc_n gregory_n ep._n ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la episc_n style_v himself_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n so_o likewise_o when_o eulogius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n write_v to_o he_o 36._o he_o l._n 4._o ep_n 36._o give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n he_o acknowledge_v 36._o acknowledge_v l._n 4._o ep_n 36._o that_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o may_v lawful_o accept_v thereof_o and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o follow_a father_n have_v give_v it_o to_o his_o predecessor_n but_o yet_o he_o refuse_v it_o out_o of_o his_o great_a humility_n as_o also_o he_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n 31._o priest_n l._n 4._o ep_n 31._o and_z as_o s._n paul_n call_v himself_o the_o great_a of_o sinner_n 1.15_o sinner_n 1._o tim._n 1.15_o and_o think_v himself_o unworthy_a to_o be_v call_v apostle_n â_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 15._o â_o and_o chief_o lest_o he_o may_v be_v think_v to_o accept_v of_o it_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n unlawful_a &_o injurious_a to_o other_o bishop_n in_o which_o he_o conceive_v john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o usurp_v it_o and_o final_o that_o thereby_o he_o may_v better_o repress_v his_o insolency_n this_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n of_o who_o because_o they_o declare_v vniversalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la in_o this_o second_o sense_n to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o episcopus_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la you_o say_v 94._o say_v pag._n 94._o they_o will_v glad_o confound_v these_o two_o title_n thereby_o to_o prove_v their_o pope_n to_o be_v proper_a monarch_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o some_o predecessor_n of_o s._n gregory_n have_v be_v call_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v their_o perverse_a error_n refute_v by_o one_o of_o their_o learned_a jesuit_n but_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o if_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o this_o be_v a_o shameful_a untruth_n for_o baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n deliver_v the_o same_o double_a acception_n of_o vniversalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la which_o i_o have_v declare_v and_o likewise_o affirm_v that_o in_o one_o of_o they_o it_o may_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o not_o in_o the_o other_o which_o be_v not_o to_o confound_v but_o to_o distinguish_v that_o confusion_n and_o mistake_n may_v be_v avoid_v and_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v evident_a for_o if_o the_o title_n of_o vniversalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la may_v not_o be_v take_v in_o a_o sense_n unlawful_a s._n gregory_n will_v not_o have_v condemn_v it_o in_o john_n of_o constantinople_n as_o a_o new_a profane_a &_o antichristian_a title_n and_o again_o if_o it_o may_v not_o be_v take_v in_o a_o sense_n lawful_a neither_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nor_o the_o follow_a father_n 36._o father_n apud_fw-la s._n greg._n l._n 4._o ep_n 36._o will_v have_v give_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o former_a sense_n be_v unlawful_a because_o it_o take_v away_o all_o ordinary_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n due_a to_o other_o bishop_n in_o their_o diocese_n the_o second_o be_v lawful_a because_o it_o leave_v to_o they_o their_o ordinary_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o s._n gregory_n in_o this_o second_o sense_n do_v instile_n himself_o episcopum_fw-la vniversalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la episcop_n ecclesiae_fw-la ep._n ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcop_n so_o if_o vniversalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n it_o be_v also_o lawful_a and_o due_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o take_v it_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o follow_a father_n give_v it_o to_o his_o predecessor_n but_o the_o former_a sense_n he_o condemn_v as_o profane_v and_o antichristian_a &_o reprehend_v in_o john_n of_o constantinople_n and_o salmeron_n for_o
a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a dignity_n and_o very_o age_a he_o undertake_v so_o long_o so_o laborious_a and_o so_o dangerous_a a_o journey_n to_o declare_v unto_o anicetus_n the_o reason_n of_o his_o persist_v in_o the_o asian_a custom_n which_o if_o anicetus_n have_v then_o condemn_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o polycarpe_n will_v have_v depart_v from_o it_o as_o all_o orthodox_n bishop_n do_v when_o they_o see_v it_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o it_o declare_v to_o be_v heretic_n sect_n ii_o s._n cyprian_a object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o cyprian_a believe_v not_o any_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o repeat_v here_o 185.188_o here_o pag._n 185.188_o what_o you_o have_v say_v before_o of_o his_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n stephen_n &_o contemn_v the_o excommunication_n for_o which_o you_o bring_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o cassander_n a_o heretic_n primae_fw-la classis_fw-la who_o work_n you_o know_v to_o be_v forbid_v and_o yet_o shame_v not_o to_o cite_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a author_n that_o you_o may_v call_v his_o lie_n our_o confession_n for_o that_o they_o be_v lie_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v 24._o prove_v chap._n 24._o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o reprovable_a you_o be_v because_o s._n cyprian_n testimony_n which_o show_v he_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o she_o to_o be_v schismatic_n you_o shift_v off_o 186._o off_o pag._n 186._o with_o a_o answer_n of_o goulartius_n that_o cyprian_a speak_v they_o of_o his_o own_o only_a authority_n against_o schismatic_n who_o trouble_v his_o jurisdiction_n which_o to_o be_v a_o false_a and_o unconscionable_a answer_n you_o and_o your_o goulartius_n may_v learn_v from_o the_o centurist_n who_o reprehend_v s._n cyprian_a 10._o cyprian_a brerel_n protest_v apol._n tract_n 1._o sect_n 3._o subdiu_fw-la 10._o for_o teach_v that_o our_o lord_n have_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o peter_n that_o one_o chair_n by_o our_o lord_n voice_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o for_o call_v peter_n chair_n the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v and_o for_o teach_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o other_o the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o these_o testimony_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o centurist_n i_o add_v that_o cyprian_n 2._o cyprian_n l._n 4._o ep_n 2._o exhort_v antonianus_n in_o time_n of_o schism_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o hold_v fast_o his_o communion_n that_o be_v say_v he_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o express_o affirm_v eccles_n affirm_v l._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccles_n that_o whoever_o resist_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n nether_a hold_v the_o faith_n nor_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o speak_v of_o some_o certain_a heretic_n he_o object_v unto_o they_o their_o great_a boldness_n in_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o who_o perfidiousness_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o this_o you_o answer_v 186._o answer_v pag._n 186._o no_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n be_v more_o urge_v by_o you_o than_o s._n cyprian_n no_o epistle_n more_o insist_v upon_o than_o this_o no_o word_n more_o inculcate_v than_o these_o and_o we_o may_v add_v no_o father_n no_o epistle_n no_o sentence_n more_o egregious_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o perfidiousness_n in_o doctrine_n but_o only_o in_o discipline_n by_o the_o false_a and_o perfidious_a report_n of_o schismatical_a fellow_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o sentence_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v pervert_v not_o we_o but_o you_o pervert_v it_o and_o so_o it_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o impartial_a judge_n that_o shall_v read_v the_o word_n not_o cut_v short_a as_o you_o rehearse_v they_o that_o the_o sense_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o entire_a as_o i_o have_v set_v they_o down_o the_o novatians_n be_v not_o only_a schismatic_n but_o heretic_n as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o epistle_n &_o else_o where_o often_o call_v they_o and_o in_o the_o word_n allege_v when_o he_o oppose_v their_o perfidiousness_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n by_o perfidiousness_n he_o understand_v error_n in_o doctrine_n or_o misbelief_n which_o be_v oposite_a to_o faith_n not_o perfidiousness_n in_o discipline_n for_o that_o have_v no_o opposition_n at_o all_o with_o faith_n wherefore_o he_o reprehend_v the_o novatians_n that_o have_v not_o only_o divide_v themselves_o by_o schism_n from_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v but_o also_o forsake_v the_o roman_a faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o dare_v notwithstanding_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o rome_n in_o hope_n to_o deceive_v that_o church_n and_o get_v their_o doctrine_n approve_v by_o she_o not_o consider_v that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o apostle_n misbelief_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o they_o which_o doctrine_n s._n hierome_n seem_v to_o have_v take_v from_o this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a when_o speak_v to_o ruffinus_n he_o say_v 1._o say_v apol._n advers_a ruffin_n l._n 1._o know_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n admit_v no_o delusion_n and_o that_o be_v fence_a by_o s._n paul_n authority_n it_o can_v be_v alter_v etc._n etc._n sect_n iii_o s._n athanasius_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n that_o s._n athanasius_n believe_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o prove_v 190._o prove_v pag._n 190._o for_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o liberius_n pope_n he_o regard_v not_o his_o excommunication_n this_o we_o deny_v it_o be_v peradventure_o true_a though_o not_o altogether_o certain_a 14._o certain_a onuphr_fw-ge in_o not_o ad_fw-la plati_fw-la ruffin_n l._n 1._o histâc_fw-la 27._o sozom_n l._n 4._o c._n 14._o that_o liberius_n weary_v out_o with_o two_o year_n banishment_n and_o other_o vexation_n by_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n yield_v to_o sign_n the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o thereby_o become_v a_o schismatic_n but_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v athanasius_n be_v not_o report_v by_o any_o writer_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a but_o a_o fiction_n of_o you_o and_o be_v it_o true_a the_o excommunication_n have_v not_o only_o be_v injust_a as_o be_v pronounce_v against_o a_o innocent_a person_n and_o therefore_o no_o way_n obligatory_a but_o also_o invalid_a for_o as_o much_o as_o liberius_n by_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o catholic_n and_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o heretic_n be_v fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n and_o have_v no_o power_n to_o pronounce_v excommunication_n against_o athanasius_n or_o if_o he_o have_v pronounce_v it_o athanasius_n have_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v to_o prove_v that_o athanasius_n regard_v not_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o while_n liberius_n be_v true_a pope_n he_o excommunicate_v athanasius_n and_o that_o athanasius_n refuse_v to_o obey_v which_o you_o prove_v not_o and_o therefore_o your_o objection_n be_v impertinent_a and_o your_o assertion_n false_a for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o athanasius_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n he_o appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o julius_n by_o the_o dignity_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v restore_v he_o again_o to_o his_o church_n 7._o church_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 11._o sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o and_o what_o else_o do_v he_o mean_v when_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n writing_z to_z marcus_z pope_n endorse_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o holy_a and_o venerable_a lord_n of_o apostolical_a eminency_n mark_v father_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a apostolic_a see_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o in_o the_o letter_n we_o desire_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o your_o holy_a see_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o head_n of_o all_o church_n we_o may_v deserve_v to_o receive_v the_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n canon_n by_o these_o our_o legate_n for_o the_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v fence_a by_o your_o authority_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o ep._n again_o eadem_fw-la ep._n we_o be_v you_o and_o
with_o all_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o we_o be_v and_o will_v ever_o be_v obedient_a to_o you_o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o felix_n pope_n for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o predecessor_n and_o we_o have_v always_o receive_v assistance_n from_o your_o holy_a apostolic_a see_v and_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o care_n you_o have_v of_o we_o we_o follow_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n fly_v for_o succour_n unto_o it_o as_o unto_o a_o mother_n from_o whence_o our_o predecessor_n have_v receive_v their_o order_n doctrine_n and_o relief_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n which_o by_o no_o mean_n we_o dare_v presume_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v you_o the_o canon_n command_v that_o in_o mayor_n cause_v nothing_o be_v determine_v without_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n for_o therefore_o christ_n have_v place_v you_o and_o your_o predecessor_n in_o the_o height_n of_o eminency_n and_o command_v you_o to_o have_v care_n of_o all_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o bishop_n if_o therefore_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o his_o judge_n if_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o power_n to_o restore_v the_o great_a patriarch_n to_o their_o see_z if_o to_o profess_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o that_o all_o mayor_n cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o his_o tribunal_n if_o to_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o final_o if_o to_o profess_v actual_a and_o promise_v perpetual_a obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v argument_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o belief_n of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o of_o his_o obligation_n to_o obey_v she_o and_o to_o live_v in_o union_n with_o she_o and_o in_o subjection_n to_o she_o then_o be_v you_o guilty_a of_o imposture_n in_o omit_v these_o and_o other_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n extant_a in_o his_o second_o apology_n and_o object_v in_o lieu_n of_o they_o a_o false_a tale_n of_o liberius_n excommunicate_v athanasius_n devise_v by_o yourself_o to_o seduce_v your_o reader_n and_o hereby_o you_o be_v convince_v of_o another_o untruth_n in_o say_v 191._o say_v pag._n 191._o that_o athanasius_n seek_v not_o any_o union_n with_o felix_n who_o be_v pope_n instead_o of_o liberius_n for_o these_o his_o testimony_n show_v that_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o you_o say_v 190._o say_v pag._n 190._o and_o that_o impertinent_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v s._n athanasius_n his_o no_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o when_o we_o esteem_v felix_n to_o be_v the_o legitimat_fw-la pope_n and_o liberius_n a_o schismatic_n remove_v from_o the_o society_n of_o catholic_n and_o from_o his_o papal_a function_n we_o fight_v notable_o against_o our_o own_o principle_n which_o be_v 1._o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o and_o 2._o that_o no_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v unless_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n which_o if_o he_o be_v he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n without_o any_o judgement_n at_o all_o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o we_o nor_o do_v it_o happen_v otherwise_o in_o the_o case_n of_o liberius_n for_o when_o he_o return_v to_o the_o papacy_n it_o be_v by_o acceptation_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n of_o rome_n equivalent_a to_o a_o new_a election_n and_o this_o not_o until_o after_o felix_n his_o death_n for_o as_o sozomen_n prudent_o observe_v 14._o observe_v l._n 4._o c._n 14._o god_n by_o his_o special_a providence_n call_v felix_n out_o of_o this_o life_n soon_o after_o liberius_n return_v to_o rome_n lest_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n shall_v be_v defame_v with_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n two_o pope_n govern_v at_o once_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n be_v not_o we_o but_o a_o ignorance_n of_o you_o for_o a_o pope_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a &_o consequent_o fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n not_o only_o by_o public_a profession_n of_o heresy_n but_o also_o by_o make_v public_a profession_n of_o schism_n and_o outward_a communion_n with_o heretic_n though_o in_o his_o hart_n he_o detest_v their_o doctrine_n for_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a faith_n inward_o but_o also_o to_o make_v profession_n thereof_o outward_o abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n wherefore_o the_o syllogism_n which_o here_o you_o make_v 191._o make_v pag._n 190._o sin_n 191._o conclude_v nothing_o the_o minor_a proposition_n that_o liberius_n notwithstanding_o his_o consent_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n be_v a_o catholics_n bishop_n be_v absolute_o false_a and_o whereas_o you_o profess_v to_o set_v down_o this_o minor_a as_o the_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n you_o falsify_v he_o for_o albeit_o he_o say_v that_o if_o a_o pope_n become_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n he_o cease_v eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la to_o be_v pope_n yet_o in_o the_o same_o place_n sententia_fw-la place_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 30._o §._o eadem_fw-la est_fw-la sententia_fw-la he_o sufficient_o express_v that_o not_o only_a heretic_n but_o also_o schismatics_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o loose_v all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n over_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n sect_n iu_o s._n basills_n belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v and_o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n answer_v it_o seem_v to_o we_o say_v s._n basil_n 52._o basil_n ep._n 52._o write_v to_o athanasius_n to_o be_v to_o good_a purpose_n that_o we_o write_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n that_o he_o consider_v the_o affair_n of_o these_o part_n and_o give_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o send_v from_o thence_o person_n by_o a_o common_a and_o synodical_a decree_n he_o may_v use_v his_o authority_n and_o choose_v man_n capable_a of_o the_o labour_n of_o such_o a_o journey_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o have_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n they_o may_v disannul_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v do_v by_o force_n bellarmine_n 15._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 15._o bring_v this_o testimony_n you_o except_v against_o he_o as_o pervert_v s._n basil_n by_o false_a translation_n which_o you_o prove_v out_o of_o baronius_n for_o where_o bellarmine_n translate_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la videas_fw-la that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n see_v or_o view_v our_o affair_n baronius_n render_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la consideret_fw-la that_o he_o consider_v our_o affair_n but_o who_o see_v not_o this_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a cavil_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o take_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n into_o his_o consideration_n as_o baronius_n read_v or_o to_o see_v and_o look_v into_o they_o as_o bellarmine_n translate_v whether_o you_o follow_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o s_n basil_n think_v it_o a_o fit_a way_n to_o redress_v the_o calamity_n of_o those_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v take_v they_o into_o his_o consideration_n or_o have_v a_o vigilant_a eye_n over_o they_o the_o require_v whereof_o from_o he_o live_v in_o a_o country_n so_o remote_a and_o in_o another_o patriarkship_n show_v that_o s._n basil_n believe_v some_o charge_n of_o visit_v those_o church_n to_o belong_v to_o he_o superior_a to_o that_o which_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n have_v nor_o do_v your_o answer_n satisfy_v say_v 195._o say_v pag._n 195._o he_o require_v not_o from_o the_o pope_n any_o help_n or_o visitation_n of_o dominion_n or_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o of_o confortation_n of_o love_v and_o brotherly_a consideration_n hope_v that_o the_o persuasion_n of_o stranger_n especial_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n grace_n will_v be_v more_o prevalent_a with_o the_o eastern_a people_n than_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n for_o this_o evasion_n be_v convince_v of_o falsehood_n by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n basil_n it_o be_v fit_a say_v he_o 52._o he_o ep._n 52._o that_o we_o beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o show_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o business_n send_v man_n that_o may_v bring_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n and_o disannul_v the_o thing_n do_v by_o force_n and_o immediate_o after_o he_o profess_v himself_o ready_a to_o be_v correct_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n if_o
that_o presume_v to_o bring_v in_o novelty_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n wherefore_o o_o belove_a brethren_n you_o as_o physician_n cure_v our_o soul_n etc._n etc._n so_o s._n basil_n free_v the_o western_a church_n &_o especial_o the_o roman_n to_o which_o he_o chief_o write_v both_o from_o pride_n and_o error_n wherefore_o when_o you_o object_n 197._o object_n pag._n 197._o that_o s._n basil_n express_v his_o grief_n say_v the_o western_a bishop_n neither_o know_v the_o truth_n themselves_o nor_o will_v learn_v it_o he_o tax_v they_o not_o of_o error_n or_o ignorance_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o you_o false_o interpret_v but_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o asian_a affair_n they_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o understand_v they_o from_o he_o and_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o may_v right_o inform_v they_o but_o give_v to_o much_o credit_n to_o the_o lie_a report_n of_o heretic_n who_o slander_v he_o false_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v sect_n v._o whether_o s._n hilary_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n to_o persuade_v that_o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o poictou_n so_o you_o write_v he_o he_o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o poictou_n which_o be_v a_o province_n of_o france_n but_o of_o poitiers_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o that_o province_n hold_v it_o not_o necessary_a to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o say_v 199._o say_v pag._n 199._o s._n hilary_n no_o soon_o understand_v that_o pope_n liberius_n as_o your_o cardinal_n have_v confess_v have_v subscribe_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n heretic_n but_o he_o make_v bold_a to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o his_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n say_v i_o anathematise_v thou_o o_o liberius_n and_o thy_o fellow_n and_o you_o add_v that_o hilary_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o do_v this_o 200._o this_o pag._n 199._o sin_n 200._o because_o it_o be_v always_o lawful_a for_o any_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o excommunicate_v any_o heretical_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n here_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o ordinary_a principle_n of_o divinity_n for_o to_o excommunicate_v a_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o person_n be_v not_o only_o to_o abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n else_o every_o man_n yea_o every_o woman_n may_v excommunicate_v her_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o person_n whatsoever_o for_o she_o may_v abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n denounce_v anathema_n unto_o he_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o anathema_n the_o one_o judiciary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n pronounce_v by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n against_o they_o over_o who_o he_o have_v lawful_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n whereby_o he_o abandon_v their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n and_o command_v all_o other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a and_o withal_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n this_o anathema_n be_v a_o excommunication_n and_o this_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o howbeit_o every_o protestant_a minister_n may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n abandon_v the_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n of_o any_o other_o man_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n denounce_v anathema_n unto_o he_o yet_o never_o any_o be_v so_o absurd_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v he_o can_v excommunicate_v any_o one_o over_o who_o he_o have_v not_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o when_o you_o excommunicate_a catholic_n or_o other_o you_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v they_o your_o own_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n but_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o forbid_v all_o other_o to_o have_v commerce_n and_o communication_n with_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a pronounce_v anathema_n against_o the_o arian_n in_o these_o word_n 5._o word_n socrat._v l._n â_o hist._n c._n 5._o they_o that_o say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n anathematize_v they_o that_o be_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o command_v all_o man_n to_o renounce_v their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n hilary_n neither_o do_v nor_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v he_o can_v denounce_v anathema_n to_o liberius_n be_v not_o his_o superior_a and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v excommunicate_v he_o another_o kind_n of_o anathema_n there_o be_v which_o be_v not_o judiciary_n but_o only_o executory_a whereby_o every_o particular_a person_n ecclesiastic_a or_o laic_a man_n or_o woman_n protest_v and_o declare_v to_o hold_v for_o anathema_n such_o as_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n hilary_n pronounce_v anathema_n to_o liberius_n for_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o banishment_n of_o athanasius_n and_o thereby_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o the_o arian_n the_o judiciary_n anathema_n that_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n have_v be_v pronounce_v before_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o sardica_n against_o the_o arian_n in_o general_a into_o who_o communion_n liberius_n be_v enter_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o pronounce_v a_o new_a sentence_n of_o anathema_n against_o he_o but_o of_o apply_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o counsel_n unto_o he_o by_o abiur_v and_o abhor_v he_o as_o one_o fall_v into_o the_o sentence_n which_o the_o counsel_n have_v pronounce_v against_o the_o arian_n and_o therefore_o s._n hilary_n add_v to_o his_o anathema_n these_o word_n for_o my_o part_n say_v for_o my_o part_n anathema_n to_o thou_o o_o liberius_n to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n but_o with_o a_o abiuratory_n anathema_n in_o this_o sense_n john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n hormisd_v constantinople_n ep._n âad_a hormisd_v anathematise_v timothy_n the_o parricide_n surname_v aelurus_n who_o felix_n pope_n excommunicate_v and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n justine_n the_o emperor_n 4._o emperor_n euagr._fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 4._o denounce_v anathema_n to_o all_o heretic_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n who_o yet_o be_v a_o secular_a prince_n have_v not_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v any_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o you_o confound_v these_o two_o anathema_n and_o because_o s._n hilary_n pronounce_v a_o abiuratory_n anathema_n against_o liberius_n infer_v ignorant_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o if_o for_o argument_n sake_n i_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o anathema_n pronounce_v by_o s._n hilary_n be_v indiciary_n and_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v liberius_n it_o will_v make_v nothing_o for_o you_o against_o the_o pope_n for_o when_o hilary_n pronounce_v this_o anathema_n liberius_n be_v not_o pope_n but_o fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n and_o felix_n substitute_v pope_n in_o his_o place_n this_o i_o have_v say_v not_o question_v but_o suppose_v liberius_n his_o subscription_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n which_o yet_o some_o have_v deny_v 9_o deny_v see_v bellar._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif_n c_o 9_o but_o be_v it_o true_a it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o be_v therefore_o a_o formal_a heretic_n in_o his_o judgement_n believe_v the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o only_o interpretatiuè_fw-fr for_o so_o much_o as_o sign_v with_o they_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o out_o ward_o communicate_v with_o they_o he_o give_v to_o some_o that_o judge_v of_o he_o by_o his_o outward_a action_n occasion_n to_o think_v he_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n only_o it_o be_v in_o which_o some_o catholic_a writer_n condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n and_o in_o no_o other_o for_o the_o very_a arian_n themselves_o never_o pretend_v that_o athanasius_n agree_v in_o faith_n with_o they_o but_o condemn_v he_o only_o for_o other_o crime_n which_o they_o have_v malicious_o compose_v against_o he_o wherein_o though_o liberius_n for_o a_o time_n yield_v outward_o to_o they_o yet_o he_o be_v ever_o most_o constant_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o you_o may_v see_v testify_v by_o antiquity_n 11._o antiquity_n apud_fw-la jodoc_n cocci_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 11._o last_o i_o must_v advertise_v you_o that_o whereas_o you_o often_o repeat_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o saluarion_n here_o 199._o here_o pag._n 199._o and_o afterward_o 345._o afterward_o pag._n 345._o again_o you_o say_v part_n of_o that_o our_o article_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a this_o you_o prove_v by_o impose_v on_o bellarmine_n your_o own_o fiction_n his_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v erroneous_a and_o near_o to_o heresy_n but_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o affirm_v this_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v anarticle_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o contrary_a to_o be_v heretical_a that_o he_o direct_o say_v 2._o say_v l._n 4._o
it_o in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o receive_v it_o to_o wit_n as_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o confirmation_n hereof_o he_o number_v this_o book_n among_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n say_v principiam_fw-la say_v ep._n ad_fw-la principiam_fw-la ruth_n hester_n judith_n be_v of_o so_o great_a renown_n that_o they_o give_v name_n to_o sacred_a volume_n and_o in_o other_o his_o work_n he_o often_o cit_v it_o as_o divine_a scripture_n 14._o scripture_n ep._n 9_o ad_fw-la salu._n ep._n 22._o ad_fw-la bustoch_n &_o in_o isa_n c._n 14._o but_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o hold_v it_o apocryphal_a you_o object_n stapleton_n 303._o stapleton_n pag._n 303._o salmeron_n lindanus_n &_o acosta_n who_o you_o call_v our_o less_o precipitant_a author_n stapleton_n you_o falsify_v cite_v he_o l._n 2._o de_fw-la authorit_fw-la script_n cap._n 4._o for_o he_o have_v no_o book_n so_o entitle_v and_o much_o less_o any_o such_o word_n as_o you_o set_v down_o for_o he_o yea_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o say_v that_o s._n hierome_n deni_v this_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a that_o he_o say_v direct_o the_o contrary_a for_o discourse_v 6._o discourse_v de_fw-fr princip_n doct_v l._n 9_o c._n 6._o how_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v hold_v apocryphal_a or_o doubtful_a be_v afterward_o by_o her_o authority_n certain_o believe_v to_o be_v canonical_a he_o exemplifi_v in_o this_o of_o judith_n which_o say_v he_o s._n hierome_n move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a hold_v to_o be_v canonical_a have_v former_o account_v it_o to_o be_v apocryphal_a this_o be_v stapletons_n doctrine_n be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a to_o produce_v he_o as_o a_o witness_n for_o the_o contrary_a and_o as_o little_a truth_n have_v your_o citation_n of_o salmeron_n for_o he_o allege_v s._n hieromes_n word_n express_o declare_v that_o the_o rule_n to_o distinguish_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o apocryphal_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o salmeron_n true_o say_v that_o if_o s._n hierome_n shall_v deny_v this_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a his_o authority_n alone_o can_v not_o be_v prevalent_a against_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o ancient_a father_n hold_v the_o contrary_a their_o testimony_n you_o may_v read_v in_o jodocus_n coccius_n lindanus_n and_o acosta_n i_o have_v not_o see_v but_o you_o that_o have_v deal_v so_o with_o stapleton_n and_o salmeron_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o deal_v no_o better_o with_o they_o sect_n vii_o s._n ambrose_n his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n s._n ambrose_n declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o report_v satyri_fw-la report_v orat._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la how_o his_o holy_a brother_n satyrus_n in_o his_o return_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v cast_v by_o ship_n wrack_n upon_o the_o isle_n of_o sardinia_n infect_v with_o schism_n he_o say_v satyrus_n not_o esteem_v any_o favour_n to_o be_v true_a but_o that_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n call_v unto_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v say_v s._n ambrose_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o show_v that_o s._n ambrose_n and_o satyrus_n believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v not_o in_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v schismatics_n you_o answer_v 213._o answer_v pag._n 213._o that_o the_o reason_n why_o satyrus_n will_v not_o communicate_v with_o any_o bishop_n that_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v because_o sardinia_n be_v then_o divide_v into_o diverse_a schism_n by_o heretical_a spirit_n no_o marvel_v therefore_o though_o satyrus_n ask_v of_o a_o bishop_n who_o faith_n he_o suspect_v whether_o he_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n do_v who_o faith_n be_v know_v to_o be_v true_o catholic_a even_o as_o if_o in_o time_n of_o rebellion_n the_o citizen_n of_o some_o one_o city_n for_o example_n york_n be_v more_o general_o know_v to_o profess_v loyalty_n to_o their_o sovereign_n a_o honest_a man_n come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n may_v ask_v the_o inhabitant_n whether_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o city_n of_o york_n thereby_o to_o know_v whether_o they_o be_v loyal_a subject_n and_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o therefore_o york_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o kingdom_n this_o your_o answer_n frame_v to_o puzzle_v a_o ignorant_a reader_n be_v easy_o reject_v satyrus_n do_v well_o know_v and_o it_o be_v general_o know_v both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n that_o at_o that_o time_n not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o that_o of_o milan_n of_o which_o ambrose_n his_o own_o brother_n be_v then_o actual_o bishop_n and_o famous_a over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v sound_a in_o faith_n and_o true_o catholic_a why_o then_o do_v not_o satyrus_n to_o inform_v himself_o whether_o that_o sardinian_a bishop_n be_v catholic_a ask_v he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o milan_n but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n nor_o any_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o head_n of_o catholic_a communion_n as_o s._n ambrose_n himself_o teach_v say_v imperat._n say_v l._n 1._o ep._n 4._o ad_fw-la imperat._n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o right_n of_o venerable_a communion_n do_v flow_v to_o all_o and_o why_o else_o do_v he_o say_v this_o but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o neither_o to_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a christ_n have_v promise_v that_o her_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v 22.31_o fail_v luc._n 22.31_o and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o 16.18_o she_o math._n 16.18_o in_o regard_v whereof_o it_o be_v say_v that_o not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n but_o to_o her_o all_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a from_o all_o place_n must_v have_v recourse_n 3._o recourse_n iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o and_o unless_o you_o can_v show_v that_o york_n have_v a_o especial_a privilege_n from_o god_n not_o to_o fail_v in_o her_o loyalty_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o to_o fail_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o profession_n thereof_o your_o example_n be_v impertinent_a york_n may_v fail_v in_o loyalty_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o york_n and_o to_o be_v a_o good_a subject_n be_v not_o term_n convertible_a but_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v neither_o fail_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n nor_o in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v so_o be_v they_o hold_v by_o s._n ambrose_n by_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n and_o by_o the_o general_a accord_n of_o antiquity_n to_o be_v all_o one_o 3._o one_o see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 3._o 2._o s._n ambrose_n declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o call_v damasus_n pope_n rector_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o church_n tâmoth_n church_n in_o cap._n 3._o prioris_fw-la ad_fw-la tâmoth_n you_o answer_v that_o we_o mistake_v the_o word_n respective_o speak_v to_o one_o person_n pope_n damasus_n and_o circumstantial_o for_o one_o time_n as_o if_o they_o be_v absolute_o so_o mean_v for_o the_o person_n of_o all_o pope_n at_o all_o time_n this_o answer_n be_v not_o respective_o but_o absolute_o insufficient_a for_o what_o dignity_n superiority_n or_o power_n of_o government_n have_v damasus_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o his_o person_n and_o for_o his_o time_n which_o every_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v in_o his_o person_n and_o for_o his_o time_n the_o power_n of_o ruler_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o damasus_n have_v be_v by_o his_o popedom_n and_o as_o he_o by_o the_o right_n of_o his_o popedom_n be_v so_o all_o his_o predecessor_n and_o successor_n in_o that_o see_v have_v by_o the_o same_o title_n and_o right_a be_v rector_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o you_o pass_v light_o over_o this_o first_o answer_n fly_v to_o a_o second_o 212.213_o second_o pag._n 212.213_o that_o the_o title_n of_o rector_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n argue_v not_o damasus_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o athanasius_n basil_n &_o gregory_n nazianzen_n have_v receive_v title_n equivalent_a if_o not_o more_o excellent_a as_o of_o prop_n and_o buttress_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o other_o in_o which_o ascription_n say_v you_o there_o be_v not_o any_o acknowledgement_n of_o authority_n but_o a_o commendation_n of_o their_o care_n and_o diligence_n judgement_n and_o direction_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o
day_n the_o roman_a church_n hold_v it_o canonical_a 222._o canonical_a pag._n 222._o be_v all_o repetition_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n which_o in_o their_o due_a place_n have_v be_v answer_v 6._o answer_v chap._n 22._o sect_n 3._o chap._n 25.26_o tot_fw-la chap._n 30._o sect_n 1._o chap._n 34._o sect_n 6._o but_o to_o they_o you_o add_v here_o a_o consideration_n of_o your_o judicious_a casaubon_n 223._o casaubon_n pag._n 223._o require_v we_o who_o account_n the_o only_a note_n of_o schism_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o pope_n thereof_o to_o answer_n why_o s._n augustine_n who_o in_o seven_o book_n beside_o many_o other_o place_n confute_v the_o schismatical_a donatist_n yet_o never_o speak_v word_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n whereby_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o truth_n your_o judicious_a casaubon_n show_v great_a lack_n of_o judgement_n in_o make_v this_o argument_n and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o read_v s._n augustine_n or_o if_o he_o have_v that_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v he_o or_o if_o he_o have_v read_v &_o do_v understand_v he_o than_o you_o know_v what_o he_o show_v in_o conceal_v the_o truth_n for_o throughout_o all_o those_o seven_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o s._n augustine_n so_o often_o object_v nor_o so_o much_o urge_v against_o they_o as_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n repeat_v the_o same_o not_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o almost_o in_o every_o chapter_n of_o some_o of_o those_o book_n for_o when_o the_o donatist_n do_v strive_v to_o defend_v their_o heresy_n of_o rebaptisation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n answer_v saepè_fw-la answer_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 18.19_o l._n 2._o c._n 1.5.6.7.9_o contra_fw-la crescon_n l._n â_o c._n 32._o l._n 2._o c._n 3._o &_o alibi_fw-la saepè_fw-la that_o cyprian_n patronage_n can_v not_o avail_v they_o because_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o s._n cyprian_a live_v &_o die_v and_o do_v he_o not_o in_o other_o his_o writing_n against_o the_o donatist_n often_o urge_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o say_v 165._o say_v ep._n 165._o he_o the_o order_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o much_o more_o assure_o and_o safe_o indeed_o do_v we_o begin_v our_o account_n from_o s._n peter_n himself_o to_o who_o as_o he_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n our_o lord_n say_v 16.18_o say_v math._n 16.18_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o linus_n succeod_v to_o peter_n cletus_n to_o linus_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o reckon_v all_o the_o pope_n unto_o anastasius_n who_o then_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n he_o conclude_v against_o the_o donatist_n in_o this_o order_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o one_o donatist_n to_o be_v find_v to_o which_o i_o add_v no_o nor_o yet_o one_o protestant_a and_o reckon_v the_o motive_n that_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o church_n among_o they_o he_o set_v down_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n there_o be_v say_v he_o 4._o he_o cont_n ep._n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o many_o thing_n which_o with_o great_a reason_n hold_v i_o in_o this_o catholic_a church_n 1._o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n confine_v to_o a_o few_o northern_a country_n in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o a_o certain_a authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n which_o protestant_n confess_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v 3._o the_o succession_n of_o priest_n even_o from_o s._n peter_n until_o this_o present_a bishop_n wherefore_o since_o that_o church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n can_v be_v the_o protestan_a church_n which_o have_v no_o such_o succession_n but_o the_o roman_a it_o follow_v that_o s._n augustine_n hold_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o express_v to_o the_o donatist_n how_o much_o he_o grieve_v to_o see_v they_o lie_v cut_v of_o from_o this_o church_n he_o say_v donati_n say_v psal_n count_v part_n donati_n it_o greeve_v we_o to_o see_v you_o lie_v so_o cut_v of_o number_v the_o priest_n even_o from_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o consider_v in_o that_o rank_n of_o father_n who_o succeed_v who_o that_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o here_o again_o s._n augustine_n show_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n build_v upon_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n against_o which_o heresy_n &_o schism_n which_o be_v the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v and_o all_o that_o be_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v as_o branch_n out_o of_o from_o the_o vine_n and_o devoid_a of_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o as_o he_o hold_v all_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v in_o miserable_a state_n so_o contrary_o he_o hold_v all_o that_o live_v in_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v most_o happy_a and_o secure_a from_o error_n in_o faith_n for_o so_o he_o deem_v cecilian_a archbishop_n of_o carthage_n to_o be_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o plot_n and_o conspiracy_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o he_o he_o may_v say_v s._n augustine_n 162._o augustine_n ep._n 162._o contemn_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v unite_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n both_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v and_o to_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v first_o into_o africa_n these_o few_o passage_n among_o many_o other_o show_v that_o your_o judicious_a casaubon_n fail_v much_o in_o judgement_n and_o truth_n when_o he_o adventure_v to_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o work_n against_o the_o donatist_n never_o speak_v word_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n nor_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n whereby_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o truth_n and_o as_o he_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a against_o the_o donatist_n so_o have_v he_o testify_v that_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n take_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 91._o scripture_n aug._n ep._n 91._o the_o pelagian_o be_v condemn_v who_o therefore_o see_v themselves_o esteem_v as_o heretic_n throughout_o all_o the_o western_a church_n in_o which_o they_o live_v seek_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n hope_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o communion_n as_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v 10._o do_v see_v justus_n caluinus_n apol._n pro_fw-la eccl._n rom._n pag._n 10._o who_o therefore_o we_o may_v check_v with_o s._n augustine_n word_n write_v against_o julian_n a_o chiese_n mantainer_n of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n i_o think_v say_v he_o 4._o he_o cont._n julia_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o suffice_v thou_o in_o which_o our_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o a_o most_o glorious_a martyrdom_n to_o the_o governor_n of_o which_o church_n bless_a innocentius_n if_o thou_o will_v have_v give_v care_n thou_o have_v ere_o this_o free_v thy_o dangerous_a youth_n from_o the_o pelagian_a snare_n for_o what_o answer_n can_v that_o holy_a man_n give_v to_o the_o african_a counsel_n but_o that_o which_o from_o ancient_a time_n the_o roman_a church_n with_o all_o other_o perseverant_o hold_v and_o else_o where_o he_o note_v 8._o note_v l._n 2._o the_o great_a christi_fw-la &_o pecc_fw-la orig_n c._n 8._o that_o albeit_o pelagius_n have_v draw_v other_o into_o error_n he_o can_v never_o deceive_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o most_o bless_a pope_n sozimus_n consider_v what_o opinion_n his_o predecessor_n worthy_a to_o be_v imitate_v have_v of_o his_o proceed_n and_o what_o judgement_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o be_v commend_v in_o our_o lord_n have_v make_v of_o he_o but_o you_o object_n 225._o object_n pag._n 225._o it_o be_v mere_a sophistry_n to_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v profess_v of_o all_o christian_n at_o all_o time_n because_o the_o father_n require_v it_o in_o their_o time_n by_o this_o argument_n a_o pelagian_a a_o donatist_n a_o eutychian_a or_o any_o other_o heretic_n may_v justify_v his_o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v as_o you_o do_v that_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o she_o be_v not_o for_o all_o time_n
and_o practise_v the_o same_o authority_n 7._o not_o unlike_a to_o these_o be_v the_o answer_v you_o give_v to_o s._n athanasius_n 254._o athanasius_n pag._n 254._o s._n chrysostome_n 255._o chrysostome_n pag._n 255._o and_o theodoret_n who_o be_v injust_o depose_v from_o their_o bishopricke_n appeal_v to_o to_o julius_n innocentius_n and_o leo_n pope_n with_o manifest_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o the_o world_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v sect_n ii_o other_o of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n examine_v some_o eastern_a bishop_n who_o with_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perturbation_n of_o the_o people_n refuse_v to_o insert_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n into_o the_o dyptike_n or_o table_n of_o public_a record_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n excommunicate_v by_o innocentius_n with_o command_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o peace_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o they_o restore_v he_o this_o though_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o wrest_v it_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n among_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v alexander_z patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroë_n but_o these_o two_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n restore_v his_o name_n and_o perform_v what_o else_o innocentius_n in_o join_v they_o 11._o they_o spond_n anno_o 408._o n._n 11._o of_o these_o two_o you_o be_v silent_a they_o be_v not_o for_o your_o purpose_n but_o because_o some_o other_o stand_v out_o for_o a_o time_n you_o lay_v hold_v on_o they_o who_o upon_o due_a examination_n will_v prove_v as_o little_a to_o your_o purpose_n as_o the_o two_o you_o conceal_v your_o first_o example_n 258.259_o example_n pag._n 258.259_o be_v of_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o stand_v out_o until_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n but_o god_n that_o will_v not_o have_v a_o man_n so_o well_o deserve_v of_o his_o church_n to_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o excommunication_n ordain_v by_o his_o providence_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o theophilus_n can_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o body_n until_o a_o image_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o adore_v it_o do_v penance_n for_o his_o former_a error_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v restore_v himself_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n this_o his_o recantation_n be_v report_v by_o isidorus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o out_o of_o he_o by_o s._n john_n damascen_n fin_n damascen_n l._n 3._o the_o imag_n prope_fw-la fin_n wherefore_o your_o denial_n of_o it_o be_v a_o falsity_n frame_v without_o ground_n by_o yourself_o out_o a_o desire_n that_o theophilus_n shall_v have_v die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o live_v your_o second_o example_n 257._o example_n pag._n 257._o be_v of_o atticus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n persist_v sometime_o in_o his_o error_n but_o at_o length_n move_v by_o the_o example_n of_o theophilus_n and_o maximianus_n a_o bishop_n of_o macedonia_n make_v intercession_n for_o he_o 408._o he_o baron_fw-fr anno_o 408._o innocentius_n yield_v to_o absolve_v he_o provide_v that_o he_o will_v himself_o ask_v absolution_n and_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n hereupon_o atticus_n witness_n theodoret_n 34._o theodoret_n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 34._o send_v many_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o innocentius_n but_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o until_o partly_o by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o partly_o fear_v a_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n he_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o write_v letter_n to_o cyrill_v b._n of_o alexandria_n persuade_v he_o to_o do_v the_o like_a wherefore_o baronius_n true_o say_v 425._o say_v anno_fw-la 425._o that_o atticus_n restore_v chrysostome_n by_o the_o command_n and_o compulsion_n of_o innocentius_n and_o not_o by_o the_o distraction_n and_o tumultuosnesse_n of_o the_o people_n only_o as_o you_o comment_n for_o if_o he_o fear_v the_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v in_o regard_n the_o people_n be_v incense_v against_o he_o for_o not_o restore_v chrysostome_n as_o innocentius_n have_v command_v and_o if_o as_o you_o object_n 258._o object_n pag._n 258._o he_o call_v two_o bishop_n that_o have_v die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n schismatic_n he_o speak_v in_o passion_n see_v himself_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o know_v as_o you_o also_o do_v that_o he_o speak_v untrue_o for_o if_o it_o be_v think_v schism_n to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o say_v he_o do_v why_o do_v he_o so_o earnest_o desire_v and_o send_v so_o many_o embassage_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o her_o communion_n be_v be_v to_o make_v himself_o a_o schismatic_a nay_o be_v it_o not_o to_o free_v himself_o from_o schism_n why_o do_v not_o you_o imitate_v he_o your_o three_o example_n 259.260.261_o example_n pag._n 259.260.261_o be_v of_o cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o if_o for_o a_o time_n he_o obey_v not_o innocentius_n in_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n it_o be_v because_o he_o judge_v the_o command_n of_o innocentius_n to_o be_v against_o the_o canon_n witness_v his_o own_o word_n allege_v by_o yourself_o fin_n yourself_o pag._n 259._o fin_n but_o his_o judgement_n be_v erroneous_a and_o because_o what_o he_o do_v be_v out_o of_o a_o pious_a zeal_n as_o he_o conceive_v god_n reduce_v he_o by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n wherein_o he_o see_v himself_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o troop_n of_o saint_n that_o assist_v he_o therein_o but_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o he_o as_o one_o that_o have_v defend_v her_o honour_n against_o nestorius_n cyrill_fw-mi move_v with_o this_o vision_n condemn_v his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v chrysostome_n and_o call_v a_o provincial_a synod_n restore_v his_o name_n to_o the_o sacred_a record_n as_o the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v do_v to_o this_o you_o make_v two_o reply_n first_o 261._o first_o pag._n 261._o you_o call_v this_o a_o tale_n of_o nicephorus_n a_o fabulous_a author_n that_o live_v 800._o year_n after_o cyrills_n death_n but_o you_o wrong_v nicephorus_n for_o he_o report_v it_o out_o of_o nicetas_n that_o live_v almost_o 500_o year_n near_o cyril'_v time_n than_o himself_o and_o out_o of_o other_o ancient_a historian_n hoc_fw-la say_v he_o 28._o he_o l._n 14._o c._n 28._o in_o arcana_fw-la nicetae_n philosophi_fw-la historia_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la alios_fw-la inveni_fw-la 2._o you_o reply_v 261._o reply_v pag._n 261._o that_o cyril'_v restore_v chrysostome_n can_v any_o whit_n serve_v our_o turn_n because_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o by_o submission_n to_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o vision_n in_o a_o dream_n sure_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o a_o dream_n when_o you_o devise_v this_o answer_n for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n then_o that_o god_n by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n shall_v notify_v to_o cyril_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o resistance_n make_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o how_o great_a veneration_n do_v cyrill_n hold_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n he_o i_o say_v that_o be_v great_o exasperate_v against_o other_o bishop_n for_o the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n yet_o never_o let_v slip_n from_o his_o mouth_n any_o the_o least_o irreverent_a word_n against_o innocentius_n and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o he_o firm_o believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v when_o he_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n as_o vicar_n to_o celestine_n pope_n 1._o pope_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o without_o who_o order_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o nestorius_n so_o he_o execute_v on_o his_o person_n punctual_o what_o celestine_n command_v and_o final_o his_o belief_n be_v that_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o church_n see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o sect_n iii_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o acacius_n examine_v a_o cacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o simplicius_n pope_n profess_v that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n belong_v to_o he_o you_o answer_v 162._o answer_v pag._n 161._o fin_n 162._o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n be_v apply_v to_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o monarchical_a popedom_n this_o satisfi_v not_o for_o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n may_v be_v of_o
n._n 1555.1556_o by_o coccius_n 6._o coccius_n to._n â_o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o and_o by_o the_o protestant_a edition_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o which_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o profession_n of_o abdisus_n be_v make_v in_o presence_n of_o two_o cardinal_n and_o subscribe_v by_o they_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o 338.339_o you_o pag._n 338.339_o reject_v this_o whole_o story_n as_o a_o tale_n of_o robin_n hood_n and_o mere_o fabulous_a which_o argue_v in_o you_o much_o unshamefastnesse_n for_o who_o be_v so_o little_o verse_v in_o the_o history_n of_o these_o time_n as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o albeit_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o east_n indies_n live_v so_o many_o year_n under_o heathenish_a or_o mahometan_a prince_n be_v debar_v from_o entercouse_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o run_v into_o diverse_a error_n yet_o they_o think_v themselves_o still_o to_o retain_v entire_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n s_o thomas_n have_v preach_v unto_o they_o and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v under_o the_o king_n of_o portugal_n be_v instruct_v by_o preacher_n send_v out_o of_o europe_n they_o reform_v their_o error_n and_o yield_v due_a subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o particular_a those_o very_a place_n which_o abdisus_n in_o his_o profession_n name_v to_o wit_n cuscho_n cananor_n goa_n calicut_n and_o carangol_n and_o many_o more_o be_v name_v by_o jacobus_n payva_n and_o radius_fw-la jesu_n radius_fw-la l._n the_o orig_n soc._n jesu_n who_o testify_v that_o even_o in_o those_o beginning_n in_o his_o time_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 80000._o of_o those_o indian_n be_v reduce_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o likewise_o know_v not_o that_o ormus_n and_o other_o place_n under_o the_o persian_a which_o both_o abdisus_n &_o andradius_fw-la nominate_v be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n have_v give_v licence_n to_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o religious_a man_n which_o go_v thither_o to_o that_o end_n to_o erect_v house_n &_o build_v church_n in_o his_o dominion_n by_o which_o mean_v many_o be_v convert_v and_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o bold_o pronounce_v that_o these_o christian_n acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o stand_v in_o christian_a union_n with_o protestant_n which_o to_o be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v sect_n ix_o of_o the_o antiochian_o your_o seven_o example_n 330._o example_n pag._n 330._o be_v of_o the_o antiochian_o who_o with_o their_o patriarch_n you_o untrue_o deny_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v any_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o maronites_n 22._o maronites_n peron_n repliq._n chap._n 22._o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n with_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n have_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n always_o live_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whereof_o your_o historian_n m._n grimston_n speak_v 1053._o speak_v descript_n of_o country_n pag._n 1053._o say_v the_o maronites_n have_v for_o these_o 400._o year_n make_v profession_n of_o follow_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o same_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o their_o patriarch_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o leo_n the_o ten_o 6._o ten_o cocci_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o moreover_o as_o genebrard_n record_v 1555._o record_v chron._n a_o 1555._o moses_n mardenn_n be_v send_v out_o of_o mesopotamia_n by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o come_v to_o vienna_n in_o austria_n after_o he_o have_v procure_v the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o syriack_n tongue_n and_o character_n at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n go_v to_o rome_n and_o as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o name_n as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n make_v a_o public_a and_o solemn_a profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o andreas_n masius_n have_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o syriack_n original_a into_o latin_a and_o both_o coccius_n 6._o coccius_n cocc_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o &_o sanders_n 1494._o sanders_n mon._n vis_fw-la l_o 7._o n._n 1494._o have_v insert_v into_o their_o work_n moreover_o the_o nestorian_n of_o seleucia_n who_o belong_v to_o that_o patriarkship_n have_v abjure_v their_o heresy_n by_o persuasion_n of_o julius_n pope_n the_o year_n 1553._o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o he_o profess_v their_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o their_o subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o send_v it_o by_o three_o chief_a man_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o with_o they_o sin_v a_o monk_n who_o they_o beseech_v julius_n to_o ordain_v and_o send_v back_o unto_o they_o consecrate_v as_o their_o patriarch_n cit_fw-la patriarch_n cocc_fw-la sand._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la sect_n x._o of_o the_o african_n your_o eight_o example_n 409._o example_n pag._n 341._o 406._o 407._o 409._o be_v of_o the_o african_n among_o who_o the_o kingdom_n of_o congo_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n 1503._o communion_n peron_n repliq_n chap._n 21._o geneb_n chron._n a_o 1503._o and_o a_o ambassador_n that_o come_v from_o thence_o a_o few_o year_n since_o and_o die_v in_o rome_n make_v public_a profession_n thereof_o from_o before_o luther_n tyme._n and_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o all_o the_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o the_o border_n of_o africa_n under_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n &_o portugal_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n sect_n xi_o of_o the_o asian_o your_o nine_o example_n 409._o example_n pag._n 341._o 406._o 407._o 409._o be_v of_o the_o asian_o as_o untrue_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o antiochian_o armenian_n and_o maronites_n who_o with_o their_o patriarch_n we_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n be_v asian_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o in_o asia_n since_o the_o expulsion_n of_o godfrey_n king_n of_o palestine_n and_o of_o boemond_n prince_n of_o antioch_n the_o guard_n of_o the_o holy_a sepulchre_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v always_o remain_v to_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n chap._n xli_o that_o in_o the_o aforenamed_a country_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o agree_v in_o faith_n &_o communion_n with_o protestant_n have_v prove_v that_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o remote_a nation_n which_o you_o have_v nominate_v there_o to_o be_v many_o catholic_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n it_o rest_v that_o your_o denial_n of_o so_o certain_a a_o truth_n either_o proceed_v from_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n and_o no_o less_o be_v your_o affirm_v the_o same_o church_n to_o be_v of_o your_o protestant_a communion_n for_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n be_v damnable_a heretic_n and_o have_v no_o communion_n at_o all_o with_o protestant_n as_o the_o follow_a section_n will_v demonstrate_v sect_n i._o the_o grecian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n and_o doctor_n morton_n falsifi_v catholic_a author_n to_o excuse_v they_o that_o the_o grecian_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o therefore_o you_o challenge_v as_o accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n err_v fundamental_o in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a tinity_n by_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v a_o thing_n most_o certain_a out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n where_o the_o chief_a dispute_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n be_v of_o this_o subject_n and_o the_o greek_n be_v convince_v acknowledge_v their_o error_n as_o the_o letter_n of_o union_n extant_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n record_n the_o same_o be_v testify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o latin_a writer_n but_o also_o by_o laonicus_n chalcondylas_n a_o greek_a historian_n the_o greek_n say_v he_o 6._o he_o de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi turcicis_fw-la l._n 6._o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n first_o defend_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o but_o afterward_o be_v convince_v with_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o latin_n they_o confess_v he_o to_o proceed_v also_o from_o the_o son_n yet_o after_o their_o return_n inte_fw-mi greece_n they_o obstinate_o defend_v their_o former_a opinion_n and_o when_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n send_v a_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o the_o lutheran_n of_o germany_n in_o the_o first_o article_n thereof_o which_o be_v concern_v the_o bless_a trinity_n he_o affirm_v and_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
over_o the_o world_n as_o well_o in_o europe_n where_o protestant_n be_v as_o in_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o they_o be_v not_o either_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o else_o that_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n and_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n all_o antiquity_n have_v hold_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v term_n convertible_a and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v divide_v from_o she_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o incapable_a of_o salvation_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o this_o behalf_n i_o have_v copious_o allege_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o apology_n which_o to_o repeat_v here_o be_v actum_fw-la agere_fw-la and_o this_o show_v how_o false_o you_o slander_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o divide_v herself_o proud_o and_o impious_o from_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n s._n augustine_n say_v to_o the_o donatist_n 52._o donatist_n l._n 2._o cont_n lit_fw-fr petil._n c._n 52._o that_o with_o sacrilegious_a fury_n they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o i_o wish_v the_o same_o may_v not_o be_v true_o say_v of_o you_o that_o church_n when_o you_o begin_v be_v and_o still_o be_v and_o shall_v ever_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n where_o christ_n be_v know_v you_o first_o live_v in_o she_o and_o afterward_o divide_v yourselves_o from_o she_o as_o all_o heretic_n have_v do_v she_o say_v s._n augustine_n 6._o augustine_n de_fw-fr symb._n ad_fw-la catechum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 6._o remain_v still_o in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o charity_n from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o same_o father_n have_v reckon_v by_o name_n all_o the_o pope_n from_o s._n peter_n to_o anastasius_n who_o be_v then_o b._n of_o rome_n compare_v that_o church_n to_o a_o vine_n and_o the_o donatist_n to_o branch_n cut_v off_o from_o she_o as_o you_o likewise_o be_v wherefore_o as_o he_o say_v to_o they_o donat._n they_o psal_n count_v part_n donat._n so_o we_o say_v to_o you_o come_v brethren_n if_o you_o please_v that_o you_o may_v be_v ingraft_v into_o the_o vine_n it_o be_v a_o grief_n toy_n to_o see_v you_o lie_v so_o cut_v off_o number_v the_o priest_n from_o the_o very_a seat_n of_o peter_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o and_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n be_v he_o that_o say_v joan._n say_v tract_n 8â_n in_o joan._n a_o branch_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o vine_n be_v fit_a for_o nothing_o but_o the_o fire_n chap._n xliii_o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n compare_v to_o the_o body_n thereof_o you_o compare_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n who_o be_v head_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o body_n thereof_o in_o many_o respect_n 345._o respect_n pag._n 343._o 344._o 345._o all_o which_o you_o attribute_v to_o we_o as_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n sect_n i._o whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o which_o you_o add_v 344._o add_v pag._n 344._o that_o according_a to_o our_o faith_n there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o you_o allege_v mark_fw-mi allege_v ibid._n mark_fw-mi bellarmine_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr council_n c._n 7._o who_o in_o that_o very_a place_n express_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o you_o afterward_o contradict_v yourself_o acknowledge_v so_o much_o e._n much_o pag._n 355._o light_v e._n set_v down_o these_o word_n of_o he_o the_o matter_n be_v still_o questionable_a until_o this_o day_n which_o also_o you_o prove_v init_fw-la prove_v pag._n 116._o init_fw-la out_o of_o stapleton_n say_v it_o be_v not_o yet_o define_v by_o any_o public_a decree_n and_o in_o confirmation_n hereof_o you_o add_v fin_n add_v pag._n 115._o fin_n that_o the_o contrary_n be_v mantain_v by_o our_o doctor_n of_o paris_n when_o therefore_o it_o be_v for_o your_o purpose_n it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n and_o when_o the_o contrary_a be_v more_o for_o your_o purpose_n than_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n nor_o yet_o define_v by_o any_o public_a decree_n but_o matter_n of_o opinion_n and_o questionable_a until_o this_o day_n these_o be_v your_o proposition_n reconcile_v they_o sect_n ii_o whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o individual_a person_n v._o g._n vrban_n the_o eight_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n you_o set_v down_o here_o 345._o here_o pag._n 345._o and_o afterward_o again_o 353._o again_o pag._n 351._o 353._o as_o a_o receive_v article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n that_o this_o determinate_a man_n for_o example_n vrban_n the_o eight_o which_o now_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v true_a bishop_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o proof_n of_o this_o you_o allege_v salmeron_n and_o suarez_n but_o very_o deceitful_o for_o although_o that_o be_v the_o peculiar_a opinion_n of_o salmeron_n and_o suarez_n who_o proof_n you_o mention_v not_o because_o it_o pass_v your_o skill_n to_o answer_n they_o yet_o they_o deliver_v it_o not_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n define_v by_o the_o church_n or_o teach_v by_o all_o catholic_a divine_n which_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o for_o suarez_n in_o that_o very_a place_n which_o you_o cite_v 345._o cite_v pag._n 24._o &_o 345._o profess_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o turrecremata_fw-la albertinus_n caietan_n bannes_n canus_n vega_n corduba_n castro_n and_o other_o catholic_a divine_n mantain_v that_o we_o can_v have_v divine_a faith_n of_o this_o individual_a man_n that_o he_o be_v true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o moral_a certainty_n only_o and_o this_o they_o hold_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o yield_v perfect_a obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o to_o believe_v his_o definition_n ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la and_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o have_v former_o acknowledge_v 2d_o acknowledge_v pag._n 2d_o this_o to_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o our_o scholedoctor_n with_o what_o conscience_n then_o do_v you_o now_o charge_v all_o catholic_n with_o hold_v the_o contrary_a as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n which_o so_o many_o of_o our_o learned_a scholedoctor_n deny_v and_o which_o in_o they_o be_v never_o censure_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o even_o by_o their_o adversary_n as_o any_o way_n opposite_a to_o faith_n but_o what_o censure_v you_o deserve_v for_o doubt_v of_o the_o ordination_n or_o election_n of_o god_n priest_n not_o i_o but_o s._n cyprian_n shall_v tell_v you_o who_o say_v 9_o say_v l._n 4._o ep._n 9_o that_o it_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o believe_v that_o priest_n be_v not_o appoint_v in_o the_o church_n from_o god_n nor_o for_o god_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o to_o be_v rebellious_a against_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n sect_n iii_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o any_o time_n a_o body_n headless_a it_o be_v a_o thesis_n of_o you_o 34â_n you_o pag._n 34â_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o body_n headless_a so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o vacancy_n in_o the_o see_v between_o the_o death_n of_o one_o pope_n and_o the_o election_n of_o another_o which_o to_o affirm_v be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o if_o you_o shall_v call_v the_o empire_n a_o headless_a empire_n because_o there_o be_v no_o emperor_n between_o the_o death_n of_o one_o and_o the_o election_n of_o a_o other_o and_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n you_o may_v prove_v bohemia_n polonia_n and_o other_o kingdom_n and_o state_n who_o prince_n be_v elective_a to_o be_v headless_a kingdom_n and_o state_n there_o be_v not_o always_o so_o precise_a necessity_n of_o a_o pope_n in_o the_o church_n but_o that_o as_o it_o be_v govern_v 300._o year_n without_o counsel_n so_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o schism_n or_o other_o difficulty_n it_o fall_v out_o that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o one_o pope_n some_o time_n pass_v before_o the_o election_n of_o another_o god_n may_v not_o for_o that_o time_n govern_v his_o church_n without_o a_o pope_n especial_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o inferior_a pastor_n remain_v in_o full_a possession_n of_o their_o authority_n over_o their_o several_a flock_n nor_o be_v the_o church_n for_o that_o time_n leave_v
church_n have_v no_o true_a visible_a head_n such_o as_o we_o require_v because_o of_o he_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v this_o be_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n this_o objection_n you_o borrow_v from_o baronius_n 955._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 955._o who_o though_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o electâon_n of_o john_n be_v void_a because_o no_o true_a form_n be_v observe_v in_o it_o yet_o you_o pass_v over_o what_o he_o add_v as_o not_o be_v for_o your_o purpose_n namely_o that_o the_o church_n afterward_o consent_v to_o his_o election_n whereby_o the_o defect_n that_o interuened_a in_o his_o former_a election_n be_v supply_v and_o he_o receive_v and_o reverence_v as_o true_a pope_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o this_o pope_n be_v for_o his_o life_n monstrous_a it_o have_v be_v prove_v 2._o prove_v abouâ_n chap._n 12._o sect_n 2._o that_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o pope_n or_o other_o bishop_n be_v not_o argument_n to_o disprove_v their_o authority_n god_n be_v able_a to_o teach_v by_o balaams_n ass_n and_o the_o evangelist_n tell_v you_o 11.49_o you_o joââ_n 11.49_o that_o notwithstanding_o caiphas_n be_v a_o wicked_a man_n yet_o because_o he_o be_v high_a priest_n he_o prophesy_v or_o rather_o god_n by_o he_o and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n foresee_v that_o caviller_n will_v arise_v have_v by_o s._n augustine_n 165._o augustine_n ep._n 165._o long_v since_o answer_v this_o your_o argument_n to_o a_o wrangle_a donatist_n and_o in_o he_o to_o you_o say_v if_o any_o traitor_n in_o those_o day_n have_v by_o surreption_n creep_v into_o that_o rank_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v deduce_v from_o s._n peter_n himself_o even_o to_o anastasius_n or_o vrbanus_n who_o at_o this_o present_a sit_v in_o that_o chair_n it_o can_v work_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o innocent_a christian_n for_o who_o our_o lord_n provide_v say_v of_o wicked_a prelate_n do_v you_o what_o they_o say_v but_o what_o they_o do_v do_v it_o not_o for_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o &c._n &c._n and_o speak_v to_o petilianus_n another_o donatist_n after_o he_o have_v reprehend_v he_o for_o separate_n himself_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o sacrilegious_a fury_n he_o add_v 51._o add_v cont._n lit_fw-fr petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 51._o why_o do_v thou_o call_v the_o apostolic_a see_v the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n if_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o man_n who_o thou_o think_v to_o speak_v the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o fulfil_v be_v do_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o pharisee_n of_o who_o he_o say_v they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o any_o way_n wrong_v the_o chair_n in_o which_o they_o sit_v nay_o do_v he_o not_o commend_v that_o chair_n of_o moses_n and_o reprehend_v they_o preserve_v entire_a the_o honour_n of_o the_o chair_n if_o you_o will_v think_v upon_o these_o thing_n you_o will_v not_o for_o the_o man_n who_o you_o defame_v blaspheme_v the_o apostolic_a chair_n with_o which_o you_o do_v not_o communicate_v so_o s._n augustine_n to_o petilianus_n and_o so_o we_o to_o you_o sect_n v._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o any_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o head_n how_o ill_o advise_v you_o be_v to_o object_v either_o the_o multitude_n or_o the_o long_a continuance_n of_o schism_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o have_v hear_v 7._o hear_v see_v above_o chap._n 7._o prope_fw-la sin_n &_o chap._n 12._o sect_n 7._o but_o because_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n when_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o that_o pretend_v right_a to_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o faithful_a can_v certain_o know_v which_o of_o they_o be_v true_a pope_n you_o ask_v 352._o ask_v pag._n 352._o what_o resolution_n our_o church_n can_v have_v in_o such_o a_o case_n add_v moreover_o 353._o moreover_o pag._n 353._o that_o our_o article_n of_o believe_v this_o only_a singular_a roman_a pope_n without_o which_o faith_n none_o can_v be_v save_v damn_v two_o of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o our_o roman_a church_n at_o that_o time_n your_o question_n be_v a_o doubt_n spring_v from_o ignorance_n and_o your_o addition_n a_o untruth_n to_o your_o question_n s._n antoninus_n seqq_fw-la antoninus_n part._n 3_o âis_fw-la 21._o c._n 2._o &_o seqq_fw-la have_v answer_v who_o treat_v of_o the_o schism_n which_o happen_v in_o time_n of_o vrban_n the_o six_o against_o who_o the_o french_a cardinal_n âearing_v his_o severity_n and_o fly_v to_o anagnia_n create_v a_o new_a pope_n call_v he_o clement_n the_o seven_o prescribe_v this_o rule_n that_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n when_o two_o or_o more_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hold_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a pope_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n to_o believe_v any_o one_o of_o they_o determinate_o to_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n but_o disiunctive_o he_o that_o have_v be_v canonical_o assumpt_v and_o which_o of_o they_o determinate_o that_o be_v faithful_a people_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o know_v but_o may_v follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o their_o prelate_n and_o superior_n to_o which_o gerson_n schism_n gerson_n de_fw-fr modo_fw-la hab_fw-mi se_fw-la temp_n schism_n add_v that_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v temerarious_a iniutious_a and_o scandalous_a to_o hold_v as_o excommunicate_v or_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n those_o that_o adhere_v to_o either_o part_n or_o that_o carry_v themselves_o noutral_o and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o either_o party_n and_o to_o obey_v either_o of_o those_o pope_n as_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v while_o the_o right_n of_o neither_o be_v certain_o know_v and_o this_o he_o confirm_v by_o the_o answer_n which_o s._n ambrose_n give_v to_o s._n augustine_n concern_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o fast_v or_o not_o fast_v on_o saturdays_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o your_o so_o often_o repeat_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o for_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v that_o this_o determinat_fw-la man_n be_v true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n if_o you_o speak_v of_o believe_v it_o with_o divine_a faith_n you_o confess_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v hold_v by_o many_o of_o our_o learned_a divine_n and_o that_o their_o opinion_n have_v never_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o believe_v it_o at_o least_o with_o moral_a certainty_n it_o be_v grant_v by_o all_o catholic_a divine_n when_o there_o be_v but_o one_o determinat_fw-la person_n who_o the_o whole_a church_n receave_v and_o object_v as_o her_o undoubted_a head_n and_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n but_o yet_o neither_o that_o be_v necessary_a in_o time_n of_o schism_n when_o of_o two_o or_o three_o it_o be_v doubtful_a which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n for_o than_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v true_a pope_n which_o be_v canonical_o choose_v without_o determine_v any_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a as_o s._n antoninus_n and_o gerson_n have_v teach_v instruct_v you_o how_o to_o carry_v yourself_o in_o such_o a_o case_n but_o i_o fear_v you_o have_v no_o desire_n to_o learn_v sect_n vi_o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v doubtful_o head_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v doubtful_o head_v you_o allege_v 354.355.356_o allege_v pag._n 354.355.356_o that_o after_o 1600._o year_n it_o be_v not_o yet_o determine_v whether_o the_o supreme_a judge_n in_o our_o church_n be_v the_o roman_a pope_n or_o a_o council_n collect_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v not_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n against_o protestant_n before_o she_o have_v satisfy_v protestant_n in_o this_o one_o whether_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v indeed_o the_o supreme_a judge_n so_o you_o as_o you_o be_v wont_a for_o you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o this_o division_n be_v inadequate_a since_o beside_o the_o pope_n alone_o without_o a_o council_n and_o a_o council_n alone_o without_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v a_o three_o member_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n together_o with_o a_o council_n who_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n all_o catholic_n hold_v to_o be_v infallible_a nor_o do_v any_o ever_o defend_v that_o a_o general_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v either_o in_o definition_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n this_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n when_o they_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v for_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o pope_n alone_o without_o a_o council_n nor_o a_o council_n alone_o without_o the_o pope_n but_o both_o of_o they_o together_o as_o they_o make_v one_o whole_a church_n consist_v of_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n and_o of_o the_o council_n as_o the_o representative_a body_n thereof_o this_o be_v that_o supreme_a judge_n which_o
pope_n be_v the_o schismatic_n and_o not_o the_o council_n but_o i_o wonder_v not_o that_o you_o take_v part_n with_o schismatic_o belike_o you_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o some_o obstinate_a puritan_n in_o parliament_n stand_v out_o against_o his_o majesty_n he_o and_o not_o they_o be_v the_o rebel_n for_o the_o case_n be_v alike_o save_v only_o that_o this_o be_v a_o temporal_a cause_n and_o that_o a_o spiritual_a but_o you_o demand_v 360._o demand_v pag._n 360._o with_o nilus_n and_o erasmus_n to_o what_o end_n general_a counsel_n shall_v be_v call_v with_o so_o much_o cost_n trouble_n and_o labour_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o s._n peter_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n call_v a_o council_n at_o antioch_n 15.6.7_o antioch_n act._n 15.6.7_o if_o you_o desire_v more_o reason_n you_o have_v they_o in_o bellarmine_n 7._o bellarmine_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 7._o who_o have_v answer_v this_o argument_n but_o you_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o sect_n ix_o doctor_n mortons_n instance_n of_o france_n and_o england_n to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o some_o of_o your_o novellist_n a_o pamphlet_n entitle_v fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetendarum_fw-la &_o fugiendarum_fw-la stuff_v with_o so_o many_o lie_v that_o the_o author_n be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v his_o name_n know_v it_o be_v prohibit_v prohib_fw-la prohibit_v indic_n libro_fw-la prohib_fw-la and_o therefore_o what_o you_o report_v out_o of_o it_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v but_o your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o admit_v within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o french_a be_v yet_o at_o liberty_n to_o believe_v as_o much_o thereof_o as_o they_o listen_v be_v a_o famous_a untruth_n for_o although_o that_o kingdom_n have_v not_o admit_v general_o all_o the_o decree_n make_v by_o that_o council_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n have_v so_o have_v that_o most_o christian_a kingdom_n with_o they_o admit_v and_o embrace_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n with_o all_o his_o catholic_a subject_n believe_v they_o no_o less_o steadfast_o than_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o you_o admit_v not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o fin_n 361._o out_o of_o b._n gardiner_n oration_n of_o true_a obedience_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o england_n be_v agree_v upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o steadfast_a consent_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n for_o albeit_o some_o person_n infect_v with_o lutheranisme_n &_o some_o flatterer_n for_o their_o own_o end_n soothe_a king_n henry_n in_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o face_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o general_o catholic_a as_o for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 1000_o year_n before_o it_o have_v be_v and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n b._n fisher_n &_o sir_n thomas_n more_o write_v most_o learned_a book_n which_o be_v yet_o and_o will_v ever_o be_v most_o high_o esteem_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o that_o what_o they_o write_v with_o their_o pen_n they_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o cardinal_n pole_n a_o man_n of_o so_o great_a worth_n that_o he_o want_v but_o two_o voice_n for_o the_o popedom_n not_o only_o write_v most_o learned_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o suffer_v and_o his_o friend_n for_o his_o sake_n great_a vexation_n and_o persecution_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n henry_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n and_o that_o many_o person_n of_o worth_n suffer_v imprisonment_n and_o death_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n among_o which_o be_v all_o the_o charterhouse_n monk_n of_o london_n with_o their_o prior_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o famous_a untruth_n to_o say_v it_o be_v then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o no_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n moreover_o you_o know_v this_o oration_n of_o b._n gardiner_n to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n prohib_o church_n in_o indic_n lib._n prohib_o and_o that_o he_o ashamed_a of_o it_o retract_v it_o which_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o object_v chap._n xliv_o whether_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n have_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n in_o which_o to_o free_v yourself_o from_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n &_o heresy_n you_o brand_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o both_o &_o labour_n to_o prove_v that_o luther_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o separation_n be_v more_o justifiable_a than_o luther_n be_v in_o his_o departure_n from_o she_o and_o may_v more_o just_o plead_v soul_n salvation_n than_o any_o of_o they_o that_o remain_v in_o union_n with_o she_o your_o chapter_n you_o divide_v into_o four_o part_n and_o these_o part_n into_o thesis_n which_o i_o shall_v examine_v the_o more_o brief_o because_o many_o of_o your_o proof_n be_v repetition_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n already_o answer_v sect_n i._o whether_o any_o protestant_n have_v hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o luther_n fall_n be_v whole_o extinguish_v your_o first_o thesis_n be_v 364._o be_v pag._n 364._o many_o papist_n in_o their_o adversnesse_n to_o protestant_n who_o they_o seek_v to_o traduce_v do_v impute_v unto_o they_o this_o faithless_a paradox_n as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v sometime_o extinguish_v a_o false_a doctrine_n say_v you_o which_o protestant_n never_o teach_v if_o protestant_n never_o teach_v this_o faithless_a doctrine_n why_o do_v luther_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o erect_v your_o new_a church_n say_v 497._o say_v praef._n in_o 1._o tom_n &_o cont_n reg._n angl._n foe_o 497._o he_o have_v none_o to_o assist_v he_o but_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o alone_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n forsake_v of_o all_o why_o do_v caluin_n say_v 141._o say_v ep._n 141._o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o since_o we_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o all_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v now_o in_o our_o very_a beginning_n disagree_v among_o our_o self_n why_o do_v he_o say_v sadolet_n say_v respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n it_o be_v public_a and_o notorious_a to_o all_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a that_o when_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v prostrate_v his_o glory_n extinguish_v religion_n abolish_v the_o church_n destroy_v and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n utter_o overthrow_v why_o do_v milius_n say_v 137._o say_v august_n confess_v explic_a art_n 7._o de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 137._o if_o there_o have_v be_v right_a believer_n before_o luther_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o lutheran_n reformation_n why_o morgensterne_n 141._o morgensterne_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n p._n 141._o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n any_o have_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o luther_n shall_v receive_v it_o from_o they_o and_o not_o they_o from_o luther_n it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o before_o luthert_n time_n all_o church_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o cimmerian_a darkness_n and_o that_o luther_n be_v divine_o raise_v up_o to_o discover_v the_o same_o and_o to_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o in_o regard_n thereof_o luther_n boast_v say_v 1525._o say_v ep._n ad_fw-la argentin_n anno_o 1525._o christum_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la primò_fw-la vulgatum_fw-la audemus_fw-la gloriari_fw-la why_o do_v camierus_fw-la say_v 1601._o say_v ep._n jesuit_n part_n altera_fw-la geneu_fw-fr 1601._o that_o error_n do_v not_o only_o possess_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o apostasy_n be_v fall_v from_o christ_n why_o do_v simon_n the_o voyon_n a_o genevian_a minister_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o doctor_n lect._n doctor_n praefat._n ad_fw-la lect._n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 605._o falsehood_n prevail_v and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a
doctor_n mortons_n late_a sermon_n preach_v in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o durham_n answer_v pag._n 495._o the_o sense_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n which_o doctor_n morton_n take_v for_o his_o text_n declare_v sect._n 1._o pag._n 496._o ancient_a pope_n object_v and_o falfify_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 2_o pag._n 501._o other_o father_n and_o catholic_a author_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 507._o doctor_n morton_n slaunder_v vrban_a pope_n and_o with_o he_o all_o catholic_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 510._o doctor_n morton_n object_v the_o bull_n of_o maundy-thursday_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 512._o other_o slanderous_a accusation_n of_o doctor_n morton_n answer_v sect._n 6._o pag._n 514._o the_o same_o matter_n prosecute_v sect._n 7._o pag._n 517._o chap._n xxxiv_o doctor_n mortons_n doctrine_n condemn_v the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o god_n pag._n 522._o s._n policarpe_a object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n s._n cyprian_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 523._o s._n athanasius_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 525._o s._n basils_n belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v and_o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n answer_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 528._o whether_o s._n hilary_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n sect._n 5._o p._n 533._o s._n hieroms_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o sect._n 6._o pag._n 536._o s._n ambrose_n his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 545._o s._n augustine_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o sect._n 8_o pag._n 552._o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o aries_n acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 558._o chap._n xxxv_o of_o title_n attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n p._n 561._o chap._n xxxvi_o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n discover_v pa._n 571._o some_o of_o his_o answer_n examine_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n other_o of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n examine_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 574_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o acacius_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 577._o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n confute_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 581._o doctor_n morton_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o optatus_n contradict_v himself_o sect._n 5._o pag._n 582._o other_o untruth_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v &_o his_o cavil_v against_o the_o title_n of_o holiness_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 583._o chap._n xxxvii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n pag._n 587._o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n live_v within_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n sect._n 1._o pag._n 588._o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o the_o second_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 592._o chap._n xxxviii_o the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v by_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n pag._n 600._o the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n prove_v by_o the_o institution_n &_o confirmation_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o pall_n or_o mantle_n grant_v to_o archbishop_n sect._n 1._o p._n 601._o a_o shift_n of_o doctor_n morton_n reject_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 604._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o institute_v and_o confirm_v bishop_n prove_v by_o example_n sect._n 3_o pag._n 605._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n without_o a_o council_n prove_v by_o example_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 608._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o restore_a bishop_n without_o a_o council_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 611._o doctor_n morton_n to_o cross_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o restore_a bishop_n depose_v take_v part_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o justify_v their_o impious_a proceed_n against_o s._n athanasius_n &_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 612._o other_o passage_n of_o doctor_n morton_n examine_v sect._n 7._o pa._n 618._o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v excommunication_n and_o of_o heretic_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n sect._n 8._o p._n 621._o adrian_z and_o nicolas_n pope_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 623._o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o flavianns_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n sect._n 10._o pag._n 624._o doctor_n morton_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o doctrine_n charge_v ancient_a bishop_n which_o exercise_v act_n of_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n sect._n 11._o pag._n 631._o chap._n thirty-nine_o of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n pag._n 635._o whether_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o general_a council_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n other_o objection_n of_o doctor_n morton_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n answer_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 637._o example_n of_o innocent_a appellant_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 638._o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v the_o antiquity_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n from_o remote_a nation_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 639._o that_o s._n athanasius_n appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o theodoret_n to_o leo_n as_o to_o absolute_a judge_n and_o that_o by_o their_o authority_n both_o of_o they_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o church_n sect._n 5._o p._n 641._o that_o s._n chrysoftome_n appeal_v to_o innocentius_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o church_n of_o constantinople_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 643._o that_o flavianus_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 648._o of_o nilus_n equal_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o right_n of_o appeal_v sect._n 8._o pag._n 650._o the_o rest_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n argument_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 653._o chap._n xl._n whether_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n pag._n 654._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o grecian_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o successive_a time_n agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o particular_o at_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 655._o that_o many_o of_o the_o grecian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n and_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 662._o of_o the_o egyptian_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 663._o of_o the_o aethiopian_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 664._o of_o the_o armenian_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 665._o of_o the_o russian_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 666._o of_o the_o aslyrian_o sect._n 8._o ibid._n of_o the_o antiochian_o sect._n 9_o pag._n 668._o of_o the_o african_n sect._n 10_o pag._n 669._o of_o the_o asian_o sect._n 11._o ibid._n chap._n xxxxi_n that_o in_o the_o forename_a country_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o agree_v in_o faith_n &_o communion_n with_o protestant_n pag._n 669._o the_o grecian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n and_o doctor_n morton_n falsifi_v catholic_a author_n to_o excuse_v they_o sect._n 1._o pag._n 670._o of_o the_o lutheran_n of_o germany_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o sect._n 2._o pag._n 674._o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n produce_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 678._o the_o egyptian_n aethiopian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n african_n and_o asian_o which_o call_v themselves_o christian_n and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 679._o chap._n xxxxii._n doctor_n mortons_n plea_n for_o his_o protestant_a church_n pag._n 683._o the_o small_a extent_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n prove_v she_o not_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n in_o doctrine_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 686._o doctor_n mortons_n pretend_a purity_n of_o manner_n in_o his_o protestant_a church_n ect_fw-la 3._o pag._n 687._o that_o protestant_n by_o schism_n have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 688._o chap._n xxxxiii_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n compare_v to_o the_o body_n thereof_o pag._n 691._o whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o
individual_a person_n v._o g._n vrban_n the_o eight_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 692._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o any_o time_n a_o body_n headless_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 693._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v at_o any_o time_n a_o false_a head_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 696._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o any_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o head_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 700._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v doubtful_o head_v sect._n 6._o pag._n 702._o of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n define_v a_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 704._o the_o same_o matter_n prosecute_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n sect._n 8._o pag._n 706._o doctor_n mortons_n instance_n of_o france_n and_o england_n to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 709._o chap._n xxxxiv_n whether_o luther_n &_o his_o follower_n have_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 711._o whether_o any_o protestant_n have_v hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o luther_n fall_n be_v whole_o extinguish_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n sect._n 2._o p._n 714._o whether_o protestant_n hold_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v invisible_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 720._o what_o cause_n may_v suffice_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 725._o of_o luther_n excommunication_n and_o his_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 731._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o subject_a to_o error_n as_o any_o other_o church_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 735._o whether_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n any_o prophecy_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 740._o whether_o luther_n be_v just_o excommunicate_v sect._n 8._o p._n 741._o of_o the_o first_o occasion_n of_o luther_n revolt_n from_o the_o church_n and_o that_o doctor_n morton_n to_o defend_v his_o doctrine_n against_o indulgence_n falsifi_v sundry_a author_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 744._o the_o cause_n give_v by_o doctor_n morton_n in_o excuse_n of_o luther_n departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 10._o pag._n 749._o whether_o protestant_n have_v any_o professor_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o luther_n sect._n 11._o pag._n 751._o that_o all_o change_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v note_v in_o the_o person_n time_n and_o place_n of_o their_o beginning_n sect._n 12._o pag._n 757._o the_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a and_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 13._o pag._n 760._o of_o the_o conformity_n of_o protestant_n and_o donatist_n in_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 14._o pag._n 763._o that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o now_o roman_z church_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o salvation_n sect._n 15._o pag._n 765._o chap._n i._o general_n principle_n premise_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o ensue_a apology_n sect_n i._o the_o importance_n of_o the_o subject_n though_n there_o be_v many_o question_n in_o religion_n controvert_v between_o protestant_n and_o we_o yet_o none_o more_o important_a or_o more_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v then_o that_o of_o the_o church_n protestant_n agree_v with_o we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v &_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n extant_a on_o earth_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o 3.15_o the_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o pillar_n and_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n which_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n must_v hear_v and_o 18.17_o and_o math._n 18.17_o obey_v which_o be_v the_o second_o eve_n frame_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o our_o second_o adam_n christ_n who_o whosoever_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o mother_n can_v have_v he_o to_o be_v his_o 10._o his_o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr symb._n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o father_n she_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o 5.23_o our_o ephes_n 5.23_o lord_n out_o of_o which_o say_v s._n augustine_n ãâã_d augustine_n ep._n 50._o ad_fw-la ãâã_d the_o holy_a ghost_n impart_v life_n to_o no_o man_n she_o be_v the_o vineyard_n seqq_n vineyard_n math._n 20.1_o &_o seqq_n in_o which_o he_o that_o labour_v not_o shall_v not_o receive_v the_o wage_n of_o everlasting_a life_n she_z the_o ark_n of_o no_n euang_n no_n s._n hiero._n ep_v 57_o s._n gaudent_fw-la tract_n 2._o the_o lect_n euang_n in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o or_o out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o depart_v shall_v perish_v she_o be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o truth_n thessaly_n truth_n lactant._n 4_o divin_v iustit_fw-la â_o ult._n orig._n hom_n 15._o in_o math._n theod_n in_o c._n 2.2_o ad_fw-la thessaly_n the_o house_n of_o faith_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o which_o man_n prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o their_o sacrifice_n accept_v all_o other_o congregation_n be_v synagogue_n of_o satan_n &_o denn_n of_o devil_n she_o be_v the_o garden_n of_o god_n 4.12.13.15_o god_n cant._n 4.12.13.15_o in_o which_o whosoever_o grow_v not_o be_v not_o a_o flower_n plant_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o weed_n to_o be_v pluck_v up_o and_o cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n final_o she_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 1.13_o christ_n 2._o reg_n 7.12_o 1_o paralip_n 17.11_o psal_n 44.7_o luc._n 1.33_o colosâ_n 1.13_o in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n people_n whosoever_o say_v 3._o say_v eb._n 152._o add_v popul_n fact_n donas_fw-la &_o cont_n ep_v parmen_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 3._o s_n augustine_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o he_o think_v himself_o to_o liuâ_n never_o so_o laudable_o for_o this_o only_a crime_n that_o he_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o and_o speak_v of_o emeritus_n a_o heretical_a med_n heretical_a serm._n super_fw-la gestis_fw-la cum_fw-la emerito_fw-la post_fw-la med_n bishop_n he_o can_v have_v salvation_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n but_o salvation_n he_o may_v have_v honour_n he_o may_v have_v sacrament_n he_o may_v sing_v alleluia_n he_o may_v answer_v amen_o he_o may_v have_v the_o gospel_n he_o may_v have_v and_o preach_v belief_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o salvation_n he_o can_v find_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n wherefore_o since_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v most_o necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o inquire_v and_o learn_v which_o and_o where_o be_v that_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o store-house_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o second_o eve_n our_o spiritual_a mother_n that_o know_v she_o &_o resort_v to_o she_o he_o may_v be_v cherish_v in_o her_o lap_n and_o nourish_v at_o her_o breast_n with_o the_o milk_n of_o her_o wholesome_a doctrine_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o catholic_n be_v that_o these_o foresay_a aâtributs_n agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o no_o other_o congregation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o alone_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v may_v &_o in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o can_v be_v save_v upon_o this_o our_o doctrine_n you_o pass_v a_o censure_n suitable_a to_o your_o modesty_n videlicet_fw-la that_o it_o be_v false_a imposterous_a scandalous_a schismatical_a heretical_a blasphemous_a every_o way_n damnable_a 5.182.419_o damnable_a pag._n 5.182.419_o presumgtuous_a 336._o presumgtuous_a pag._n 336._o impious_a 95._o impious_a pag_n 95._o execrable_a 127._o execrable_a pag_n 127._o damnable_o heretical_a 91._o heretical_a pag_n 91._o pernicious_a antichristian_a 99_o antichristian_a pag_n 99_o sacrilegious_a 336._o sacrilegious_a pag._n 336._o satanical_a idolatrous_a 387._o idolatrous_a pag._n 387._o this_o be_v your_o censure_n and_o to_o make_v it_o good_a you_o write_v a_o large_a volume_n which_o you_o entitle_v the_o grand_a imposture_n of_o the_o now_o roman_z church_n but_o mistake_v yourself_o in_o the_o name_n for_o the_o book_n be_v &_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v entitle_v the_o grand_a imposture_n of_o doctor_n thomas_n morton_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o this_o and_o all_o former_a age_n for_o upon_o due_a examination_n such_o he_o will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v that_o shall_v please_v to_o pass_v his_o eye_n over_o the_o ensue_a apology_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o after_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o he_o will_v rest_v convince_v that_o
those_o monstrous_a title_n wherewith_o you_o slander_v our_o doctrine_n most_o fit_o agree_v to_o your_o own_o deliver_v in_o your_o grand_a imposture_n but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o join_v issue_n with_o you_o concern_v the_o particular_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o examine_v brief_o in_o general_a whether_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v live_v upon_o earth_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o now_o to_o be_v most_o glorious_a saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v of_o your_o belief_n concern_v the_o roman_a church_n or_o of_o we_o for_o they_o be_v light_n of_o the_o world_n 5.15_o world_n math._n 5.15_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v in_o all_o age_n and_o place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n of_o his_o church_n to_o enlighten_v our_o way_n and_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v like_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o heretical_a 4.14_o heretical_a ephef_fw-fr 4.14_o doctrine_n i_o suppose_v that_o as_o there_o be_v no_o wiseman_n who_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v rank_v among_o they_o in_o the_o next_o world_n and_o to_o stand_v with_o they_o at_o the_o late_a day_n so_o there_o be_v none_o that_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o this_o world_n a_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o a_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o bring_v they_o to_o that_o happiness_n especial_o know_v as_o we_o do_v that_o there_o be_v burr_n one_o church_n in_o which_o and_o one_o faith_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v for_o to_o think_v that_o so_o many_o man_n so_o eminent_o learn_v and_o that_o use_v so_o great_a mean_n both_o of_o study_n and_o prayer_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heaven_n have_v all_o err_v not_o live_v in_o the_o true_a church_n which_o lead_v to_o salvation_n but_o in_o a_o err_a synagogue_n that_o lead_v to_o everlasting_a ruin_n and_o damnation_n be_v a_o conceit_n that_o i_o think_v no_o christian_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a no_o prudent_a man_n can_v harbour_v in_o his_o breast_n which_o yet_o he_o must_v do_v that_o will_v credit_v your_o doctrine_n as_o the_o ensue_a proof_n will_v declare_v sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v true_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n although_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a church_n whether_o we_o regard_v the_o etymology_n or_o the_o most_o proper_a and_o usual_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a signify_v not_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o the_o universal_a spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o withal_o it_o be_v true_a that_o every_o particular_a church_n may_v in_o some_o sense_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o as_o every_o particular_a orthodox_n man_n have_v the_o denomination_n of_o a_o catholic_a man_n because_o he_o profess_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n so_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n both_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o orthodoxal_a may_v be_v call_v catholic_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o christian_n of_o smyrna_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o pontus_n 14._o pontus_n euseb_n l._n 4._o histor_n c._n 14._o address_v their_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o philomelium_n and_o to_o all_o other_o the_o holy_a &_o catholic_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n constantine_n athaâasij_fw-la constantine_n in_o apolog_n 2._o athaâasij_fw-la the_o emperor_n call_v the_o church_n of_o athanasius_n the_o catholic_a church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o it_o preserve_v entire_a while_o many_o other_o church_n of_o egypt_n be_v infect_v with_o arianisme_n and_o so_o likewise_o 4._o likewise_o cont._n ep_v fund_z c_o 4._o s._n augustine_n with_o who_o agree_v 1._o agree_v epist._n 1._o pacianus_n and_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n 18._o jerusalem_n cateche_n 18._o say_v that_o if_o a_o stranger_n come_v into_o a_o city_n infect_v with_o heresy_n and_o inquire_v for_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o will_v not_o direct_v he_o to_o any_o church_n of_o they_o but_o to_o a_o church_n in_o which_o catholic_n meet_v to_o serve_v god_n in_o this_o sense_n as_o other_o particular_a church_n so_o also_o the_o roman_a even_o as_o she_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n limit_v to_o the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n may_v have_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n but_o when_o we_o say_v no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n for_o catholic_n of_o other_o diocese_n may_v be_v save_v aswell_o as_o of_o the_o roman_a but_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o understand_v the_o universal_a church_n comprehend_v both_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n and_o all_o other_o particular_a church_n that_o profess_v subjection_n to_o she_o follow_v her_o doctrine_n and_o embrace_v her_o communion_n for_o all_o these_o by_o adherence_n to_o she_o and_o union_n with_o she_o make_v one_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o one_o holy_a catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n of_o which_o she_o be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o rest_n member_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v several_a dignity_n unite_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v bishop_n his_o jurisdiction_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o town_n within_o her_o territory_n of_o which_o the_o roman_a diocese_n consist_v as_o he_o be_v archbishop_n he_o have_v subject_a unto_o he_o some_o few_o other_o the_o chief_a of_o which_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ostia_n as_o he_o be_v patriarch_n the_o extent_n of_o his_o authority_n be_v over_o all_o the_o western_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o final_o as_o he_o be_v pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o chief_a vicar_n or_o lieutenant_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n wheresoever_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v which_o therefore_o be_v absolute_o and_o without_o limitation_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o this_o transcendent_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v right_o style_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o therefore_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o pastor_n as_o people_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n owe_v subjection_n and_o obedience_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o father_n of_o all_o bishop_n so_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n now_o that_o not_o only_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o the_o roman_a as_o head_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o member_n be_v likewise_o right_o and_o in_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n style_v the_o roman_a church_n i_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n say_v 17._o say_v de_fw-fr percato_fw-la orig_n l._n 2._o c._n 17._o that_o against_o the_o pelagian_o not_o only_o the_o counsel_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o also_o universam_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la the_o whole_a roman_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v most_o just_o incense_v where_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o understand_v the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n as_o by_o the_o roman_a empire_n he_o understand_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o i_o prove_v by_o example_n for_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o jewish_a people_n or_o the_o jewish_a church_n we_o understand_v not_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n only_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n that_o be_v join_v therewith_o s._n john_n baptist_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n s._n paul_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o that_o holy_a widow_n anna_n mention_v by_o s._n luke_n 2.36_o luke_n cap._n 2.36_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n and_o yet_o they_o all_o be_v right_o call_v jew_n part_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n and_o member_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o adherence_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o the_o principal_a tribe_n which_o be_v that_o of_o juda_n likewise_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v not_o comprehend_v the_o natural_a greek_n only_o for_o
the_o muscovite_n and_o russian_n though_o they_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nation_n and_o have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o different_a tongue_n be_v yet_o esteem_v and_o say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n because_o they_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n and_o what_o more_o usual_a to_o protestant_n themselves_n then_o to_o call_v catholic_n in_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o they_o live_v romanist_n and_o last_o to_o confirm_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n with_o secular_a aswell_o as_o with_o ecclesiastical_a example_n who_o know_v not_o that_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o all_o writer_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v not_o understand_v the_o city_n and_o territory_n of_o rome_n only_o but_o also_o whatsoever_o other_o province_n subject_a to_o the_o roman_a emperor_n though_o never_o so_o distant_a from_o rome_n and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n when_o we_o say_v that_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o understand_v not_o the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n which_o make_v one_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n of_o which_o the_o roman_a be_v head_n and_o the_o rest_n member_n subject_a to_o she_o and_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n in_o regard_n whereof_o she_o may_v in_o a_o sense_n not_o improper_a be_v call_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o in_o a_o fleet_n of_o galley_n the_o chief_a galley_n which_o have_v command_v over_o the_o rest_n though_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a galley_n be_v call_v the_o general_n and_o in_o a_o army_n of_o man_n though_o the_o chief_a commander_n be_v a_o particular_a man_n and_o as_o a_o captain_n have_v a_o particular_a company_n of_o his_o own_o yet_o he_o be_v right_o call_v the_o general_n and_o as_o none_o can_v be_v a_o soldier_n of_o that_o fleet_n of_o galley_n unless_o he_o be_v in_o the_o chief_a galley_n or_o in_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n subordinate_a to_o she_o nor_o a_o soldier_n of_o that_o army_n unless_o he_o be_v of_o the_o general_n particular_a company_n or_o of_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n subject_n to_o he_o so_o none_o can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n unless_o he_o be_v of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o some_o other_o subject_a to_o she_o and_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o albeit_o every_o orthodox_n church_n may_v be_v call_v a_o catholic_a church_n and_o every_o orthodox_n man_n a_o catholic_a man_n yet_o this_o denomination_n agree_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n causal_o and_o original_o and_o to_o other_o man_n and_o church_n participative_o in_o regard_v whereof_o s._n cyprim_n 8._o cyprim_n l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o fall_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o original_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n from_o whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o every_o particular_a person_n that_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v right_o style_v catholic_a so_o all_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v schismatik_n or_o heretic_n sect_n iii_o that_o in_o the_o language_n of_o antiquity_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v two_o name_n signify_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o constant_a belief_n of_o all_o orthodox_n father_n and_o people_n aswell_o of_o the_o primitive_a as_o of_o the_o successive_a age_n since_o christ_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o that_o out_o of_o she_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n the_o whole_a scope_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n be_v to_o impugn_v this_o truth_n and_o the_o whole_a drift_n and_o subject_n of_o this_o apology_n shall_v be_v to_o maintain_v &_o defend_v the_o same_o truth_n and_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v some_o little_a taste_n or_o prelibation_n of_o what_o shall_v be_v more_o large_o prove_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o work_n the_o belief_n of_o some_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a and_o renown_a father_n of_o god_n church_n not_o in_o i_o but_o in_o their_o own_o clear_a express_a and_o unanswerable_a word_n first_o therefore_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o martion_n who_o have_v present_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v 4._o say_v cont._n marcio_n l._n 4._o c._n 4._o martion_n give_v his_o money_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o reject_v both_o it_o and_o he_o when_o he_o fall_v into_o heresy_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o that_o ancient_a learned_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o primate_n of_o africa_n s._n cyprian_n 2._o cyprian_n l._n 4._o ep_n 2._o who_o express_v to_o antonianus_n how_o great_a joy_n he_o conceive_v to_o understand_v that_o forsake_v the_o novatians_n he_o whole_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n adhere_v to_o cornelius_n pope_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n you_o write_v say_v he_o to_o antonianus_n that_o i_o will_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o your_o letter_n to_o cornelius_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v understand_v that_o you_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o speak_v to_o cornelius_n himself_o 8._o himself_o l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o and_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o original_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o we_o that_o letter_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o all_o our_o colleague_n at_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v firm_o embrace_v your_o communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o unity_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o s._n cyprian_n language_n and_o belief_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n and_o the_o same_o appear_v by_o those_o african_n who_o novatus_fw-la have_v seduce_v to_o forsake_v cornelius_n the_o true_a pâpe_n and_o adhere_v to_o novatian_n the_o antipope_n for_o perceave_v that_o by_o fall_v from_o cornelius_n they_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o become_v schismatic_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o make_v their_o recantation_n in_o these_o word_n report_v and_o commend_v by_o s._n cyprian_a 46._o cyprian_a ep._n 46._o we_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a catholic_a church_n choose_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o confess_v our_o error_n we_o have_v be_v seduce_v we_o have_v be_v circumvent_v by_o perfidiousnes_n &_o captious_a loquacity_n for_o although_o we_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v communication_n with_o a_o man_n novatian_n the_o antipope_n that_o be_v a_o schismatic_a and_o a_o heretic_n yet_o our_o mind_n be_v always_o sincere_a in_o the_o church_n for_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n christ_n who_o we_o have_v confess_v and_o one_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o these_o word_n s._n cyprian_n as_o you_o see_v together_o with_o those_o his_o african_n call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o pâofesseth_v that_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o he_o be_v to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o cornelius_n himself_o who_o speak_v of_o novatus_fw-la that_o have_v set_v up_o novatian_n a_o antipope_n in_o opposition_n to_o he_o say_v 35._o say_v apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 6._o hist_o c._n 35._o novatus_fw-la forsooth_o will_v have_v we_o to_o think_v that_o he_o have_v forget_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n where_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o understand_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la who_o report_v how_o his_o holy_a brother_n satyrus_n in_o his_o return_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v cast_v by_o shipwreck_n on_o the_o island_n of_o sardinia_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o luciferian_o and_o desire_v to_o communicate_v with_o none_o but_o catholic_n call_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o inquire_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v say_v s._n ambrose_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o s._n augustine_n have_v allege_v a_o sentence_n of_o s._n
communicate_v with_o cornelius_n pope_n but_o because_o as_o there_o he_o express_v to_o be_v in_o his_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o write_v to_o cornelius_n himself_o he_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n 8._o peter_n l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o the_o root_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o 3._o and_o l._n 1._o ep_v 3._o the_o principal_a chair_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v from_o whence_o he_o infer_v that_o whosoever_o depart_v from_o that_o ecclesiae_fw-la that_o l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la see_v hold_v not_o the_o faith_n nor_o be_v in_o the_o church_n so_o teach_v ancient_a pacianus_n 2._o pacianus_n ep._n 2._o for_o novatian_n as_o s._n cyprian_n affirm_v have_v make_v himself_o a_o adulterous_a and_o contrary_a head_n to_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a pope_n and_o thereby_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n pacianus_n for_o that_o very_a cause_n pronounce_v he_o to_o have_v dye_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n although_o say_v be_v novatian_n have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o bone_n crown_v and_o why_o not_o because_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o concord_n out_o of_o that_o mother_n whereof_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o martyr_n must_v be_v a_o portion_n so_o teach_v optatus_n that_o learned_a bishop_n of_o milevis_n in_o africa_n when_o write_v against_o parmenianus_n the_o donatist_n he_o parmen_fw-la he_o l._n 2._o cont_n part_n parmen_fw-la say_v thou_o can_v not_o deny_v out_o that_o thou_o know_v the_o episcopal_a chair_n to_o have_v be_v first_o set_v up_o in_o rome_n for_o peter_n in_o which_o seat_n be_v place_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v be_v also_o call_v cephas_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v to_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n may_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o particular_a chair_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o will_v against_o the_o only_a chair_n set_v up_o another_o and_o again_o show_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v schismatic_n and_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n he_o ibid._n he_o ibid._n say_v from_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o you_o attempt_v to_o usurp_v to_o yourselves_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n you_o that_o fight_v against_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n by_o your_o bold_a and_o sacrilegious_a presumption_n thus_o write_v optatus_n 1200._o year_n since_o and_o by_o his_o argument_n we_o may_v now_o prove_v protestant_n to_o be_v schismatic_n no_o less_o than_o he_o do_v the_o donatist_n so_o teach_v s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la profess_v that_o to_o communicate_v with_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o one_o and_o write_v to_o siricius_n pope_n and_o acknowledge_v all_o those_o to_o be_v heretic_n who_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v as_o such_o he_o say_v 81._o say_v l._n 10._o ep_n 81._o who_o your_o holiness_n have_v condemn_v know_v that_o we_o also_o hold_v they_o condemn_v according_a to_o your_o judgement_n so_o teach_v s._n hierome_n who_o write_v against_o lucifer_n the_o schismatical_a bishop_n of_o calaris_n in_o sardinia_n and_o the_o luciferian_o his_o follower_n that_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n say_v to_o lucifer_n 8._o lucifer_n epist._n 8._o i_o can_v dry_v up_o all_o the_o river_n of_o thy_o argument_n with_o the_o only_a sunshine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o we_o have_v now_o reason_v long_o i_o will_v in_o few_o word_n declare_v plain_o unto_o thou_o my_o judgement_n which_o be_v that_o we_o be_v to_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n dure_v until_o this_o day_n and_o else_o where_o declare_v what_o church_n he_o mean_v he_o advise_v demetrias_n that_o if_o she_o will_v avoid_v the_o snare_n of_o heretic_n she_o hold_v fast_o the_o faith_n of_o innocentius_n pope_n son_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n to_o anastasius_n who_o have_v break_v the_o pestilent_a head_n and_o stop_v the_o hiss_a mouth_n of_o that_o hydra_n which_o attempt_v to_o pollute_v and_o corrupt_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o again_o write_v to_o dâmasus_n pope_n he_o say_v 57_o say_v ep._n 57_o i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o your_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o peter_n chair_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v not_o in_o the_o ark_n shall_v perish_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o flood_n he_o that_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n be_v profane_a whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o you_o scatters_z that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n be_v of_o antichrist_n so_o teach_v s._n basill_n in_o very_a deed_n say_v he_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o diac._n the_o ep._n 69._o per_fw-la sabin_n diac._n pope_n that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o thy_o piety_n be_v worthy_a of_o that_o most_o excellent_a voice_n which_o proclaim_v thou_o bless_v to_o wit_n that_o thou_o may_v discern_v betwixt_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_n &_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o pure_a and_o that_o without_o any_o diminution_n thou_o may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a in_o s._n basils_n belief_n that_o the_o assurance_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o s._n peter_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o make_v to_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o own_o person_n only_o nor_o only_o for_o his_o time_n but_o in_o he_o to_o all_o his_o successor_n and_o to_o they_o in_o he_o be_v grant_v that_o admirable_a privilege_n of_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n pure_a and_o without_o any_o diminution_n so_o teach_v s._n maximus_n alias_o fin_fw-fr alias_o in_o ep_v ad_fw-la orientales_fw-la apud_fw-la s._n tho._n in_o opuse_n 1._o prope_fw-la fin_fw-fr maximianus_n all_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v receive_v our_o lord_n sincere_o and_o all_o catholic_n throughout_o the_o whole_a earth_n that_o confess_v the_o true_a faith_n look_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n as_o upon_o a_o sun_n and_o shall_v receive_v from_o she_o the_o light_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o that_o be_v read_v to_o have_v make_v a_o perfect_a confession_n of_o the_o faith_n our_o lord_n reveal_v it_o unto_o he_o math._n 16._o when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n whereupon_o our_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o ibid._n and_o ibid._n again_o we_o profess_v the_o universal_a church_n to_o be_v frame_v and_o found_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o peter_n confession_n according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o which_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remain_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o she_o keep_v her_o faith_n and_o confession_n so_o teach_v s._n augustine_n who_o among_o the_o argument_n which_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n reckon_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v even_o from_o s._n peter_n until_o his_o time_n i_o be_o keep_v say_v 4._o say_v l._n eont_a epist_n funda_fw-la c._n 4._o he_o in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o priest_n from_o the_o very_o see_v of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n after_o his_o resurrectien_n commit_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v even_o to_o the_o present_a bishop_n and_o exhort_v the_o donatist_n which_o brag_v that_o they_o also_o have_v bishop_n he_o 165._o he_o epist._n 165._o say_v if_o the_o order_n &_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o much_o more_o assure_o &_o safe_o indeed_o do_v we_o begin_v our_o account_n from_o s._n peter_n himself_o unto_o who_o as_o he_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n our_o lord_n say_v math._n 16._o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o linus_n succeed_v to_o peter_n cletus_n to_o linus_n and_o have_v reckon_v up_o all_o the_o pope_n unto_o anastasius_n who_o then_o sit_v in_o s._n peter_n chair_n he_o conclude_v against_o the_o donatist_n in_o this_o order_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o donatist_n to_o be_v find_v to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v no_o nor_o yet_o any_o protestant_n since_o therefore_o the_o church_n in_o
a_o other_o french_a lawyer_n who_o you_o call_v our_o noble_a historian_n whereas_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o history_n show_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o huguenot_n or_o little_o better_a nor_o be_v you_o content_v with_o cite_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a author_n but_o to_o help_v out_o the_o matter_n you_o falsify_v he_o most_o notorious_o as_o hereafter_o 9_o hereafter_o chap._n 44._o sect_n 9_o shall_v be_v prove_v a_o three_o sleight_n be_v to_o urge_v as_o catholic_a author_n some_o that_o be_v of_o suspect_a faith_n as_o 1._o erasmus_n 208._o erasmus_n pag_n 208._o who_o albeit_o in_o the_o end_n he_o abandon_v luther_n g._n luther_n 303._o u._n 306._o a_o 381._o g_o 380._o f._n g._n and_o die_v catholic_a as_o out_o of_o his_o own_o confession_n and_o osianders_n testimony_n brierley_n apol._n brierley_n aduertism_n before_o his_o protest_v apol._n have_v prove_v yet_o for_o some_o time_n he_o favour_v luther_n &_o in_o regard_n thereof_o be_v challenge_v by_o doctor_n humfroy_n and_o doctor_n reynolds_n for_o a_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o by_o john_n fox_n canonize_v for_o a_o protestant_a saint_n decemb._n saint_n act_n and_o mon._n pa._n 402._o kalend._n 22._o decemb._n his_o rash_a and_o unaduised_a writing_n give_v occasion_n to_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n to_o father_n on_o he_o diverse_a of_o their_o heretical_a tenant_n and_o therefore_o be_v general_o reprove_v by_o catholic_n &_o prohib_o &_o ind._n lib._n prohib_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n which_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o &_o therefore_o your_o persist_v still_o to_o allege_v he_o against_o we_o as_o a_o approve_a catholic_a author_n be_v inexcusable_a 2._o to_o this_o class_n may_v be_v reduce_v other_o who_o though_o catholic_n yet_o fall_v into_o some_o error_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la claudius_n espencaus_n papyrius_n massonius_n joannes_n ferus_fw-la and_o gulielmus_fw-la barklaius_fw-la of_o which_o the_o four_o first_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v you_o ignorant_a thereof_o for_o speak_v of_o rhenanus_fw-la you_o say_v 101._o say_v pag._n 101._o rhenanus_fw-la writ_n so_o while_o he_o have_v the_o use_n of_o his_o tongue_n but_o since_o you_o have_v gag_v he_o by_o your_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la by_o what_o authority_n then_o do_v you_o ungagge_v he_o who_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o mother_n have_v so_o just_o gag_v and_o though_o william_n barkley_n be_v not_o register_v in_o the_o index_n as_o a_o condemn_a author_n his_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o since_o the_o index_n be_v make_v yet_o bellarmine_n praesat_fw-la bellarmine_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la papae_fw-la advers_o barclaium_n in_o praesat_fw-la have_v produce_v against_o his_o doctrine_n the_o agree_a consent_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n of_o italy_n france_n spain_n england_n and_o scotland_n as_o also_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a pope_n and_o general_a counsel_n and_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n have_v censure_v he_o for_o that_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o a_o lawyer_n he_o presume_v to_o write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la papa_n in_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la which_o contain_v diverse_a error_n &_o be_v leave_v imperfect_a at_o his_o death_n be_v afterward_o publish_v without_o name_n of_o author_n printer_n or_o place_n of_o impression_n for_o although_o some_o copy_n say_v it_o be_v print_v at_o mussipont_n yet_o bellarmine_n convince_v that_o to_o be_v a_o ibid._n a_o ibid._n untruth_n &_o john_n barkeley_n son_n to_o william_n have_v confess_v the_o same_o parenesis_n same_o in_o praef_n parenesis_n give_v notice_n to_o all_o man_n that_o it_o be_v publish_v in_o england_n by_o protestant_n and_o have_v withal_o acknowledge_v his_o father_n to_o have_v err_v in_o that_o book_n and_o retract_v his_o own_o defence_n thereof_o all_o this_o may_v have_v move_v you_o to_o forbear_v the_o allege_v of_o barkeleys_n book_n against_o us._n and_o so_o much_o the_o urge_v in_o this_o your_o grand_a imposture_n the_o very_a same_o passage_n of_o he_o which_o your_o ancient_a antagonist_n 202._o antagonist_n f._n person_n treatise_n to_o mitigation_n chap._n 6._o pag._n 202._o here_o tofore_o show_v you_o to_o have_v object_v in_o a_o other_o treatise_n of_o you_o corrupt_o against_o our_o common_a belief_n and_o practice_n falsify_v and_o sophisticate_a both_o his_o and_o our_o meaning_n and_o the_o like_a abuse_n he_o show_v you_o to_o have_v offer_v to_o ibid._n to_o ibid._n tolosanus_n who_o testimony_n you_o yet_o again_o impertinent_o produce_v here_o against_o 172._o against_o pag._n 172._o us._n 3._o and_o to_o this_o class_n may_v be_v reduce_v polydore_v virgil_n c._n virgil_n grand_fw-fr impost_n pag._n 46.97_o e._n 164._o p._n 382._o â_o 386_o c._n who_o be_v a_o catholic_a author_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr inventoribus_fw-la rerum_fw-la have_v be_v enlarge_v and_o corrupt_v by_o heretic_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n prohibit_v 4._o your_o four_o sleight_n be_v to_o allege_v and_o insist_v much_o on_o some_o writing_n of_o aenae_fw-la as_o siluius_n cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la and_o stephen_n gardiner_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n which_o they_o set_v forth_o in_o their_o youth_n but_o afterward_o repent_v and_o public_o retract_v aenaeas_n siluius_n that_o be_v afterward_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o be_v in_o his_o young_a year_n present_v at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o secretary_n thereof_o write_v a_o book_n exalt_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n and_o depress_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o book_n be_v not_o only_o forbid_v by_o the_o church_n but_o he_o himself_o also_o be_v more_o mature_a in_o year_n more_o ripe_a in_o judgement_n and_o more_o solid_o learn_v repenred_n the_o writing_n thereof_o &_o when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n set_v forth_o a_o special_a bull_n to_o retract_v it_o seqq_fw-la it_o extat_fw-la hac_fw-la bulla_n apud_fw-la binium_fw-la to_o 4._o pag._n 512._o &_o seqq_fw-la in_o which_o among_o other_o word_n he_o say_v in_o minoribus_fw-la agentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n while_o i_o be_v in_o minority_n not_o yet_o enter_v into_o any_o holy_a order_n be_v present_a at_o basil_n among_o those_o who_o make_v themselves_o a_o general_a council_n &_o say_v they_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o write_v a_o small_a book_n of_o dialogue_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o ignorant_o as_o paul_n do_v i_o persecute_v the_o roman_a and_o chief_a see_n wherefore_o i_o admonish_v in_o our_o lord_n that_o you_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o such_o former_a writing_n of_o i_o as_o do_v in_o any_o sort_n extenuate_v the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o then_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o make_v not_o this_o change_n by_o his_o come_n to_o the_o popedom_n but_o before_o he_o be_v either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n and_o set_v down_o the_o cause_n that_o move_v he_o thereto_o he_o add_v have_v consider_v all_o these_o thing_n i_o submit_v myself_o to_o pope_n eugenius_n say_v with_o hierome_n i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o chayreof_o peter_n upon_o which_o i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v and_o i_o have_v at_o that_o time_n no_o other_o order_n but_o of_o priesthood_n only_o when_o i_o return_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o eugenius_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o bellarmine_n say_v silvio_n say_v lib._n the_o scriptor_n in_o aenea_fw-la silvio_n he_o retract_v his_o error_n in_o his_o old_a age_n and_o be_v pope_n he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o the_o say_a bull_n to_o make_v his_o retractation_n public_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o the_o error_n itself_o he_o recall_v before_o he_o be_v either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o this_o discover_v your_o want_n of_o sincerity_n who_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n allege_v testimony_n of_o aeneas_n to_o show_v his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o roman_a church_n conceal_v all_o those_o in_o which_o his_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n be_v true_o deliver_v and_o set_v down_o d._n down_o pag._n 91._o d._n 210._o *_o .249_o d._n only_o such_o as_o you_o can_v pick_v out_o of_o his_o former_a work_n write_v in_o his_o youth_n forbid_v by_o the_o church_n and_o retract_v by_o himself_o which_o deal_v be_v no_o less_o impostetous_a then_o if_o you_o shall_v deliver_v as_o s._n augustins_n doctrine_n that_o which_o in_o his_o retractation_n he_o have_v recall_v but_o you_o seek_v to_o lessen_v this_o imposture_n by_o add_v a_o other_o to_o it_o for_o lest_o peradventure_o your_o reader_n may_v have_v notice_n of_o this_o retractation_n of_o aeneas_n and_o thereby_o discover_v your_o bad_a deal_n you_o cover_v it_o by_o insinuate_v that_o he_o make_v no_o such_o recantation_n till_o he_o be_v pope_n for_o have_v cite_v a_o passage_n of_o he_o you_o say_v 210._o say_v pag._n 210._o so_o aeneas_n out_o of_o hierome_n while_o
from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v true_a for_o before_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n they_o shall_v become_v member_n of_o god_n church_n and_o persevere_v in_o she_o until_o death_n but_o how_o prove_v this_o that_o none_o but_o predestinate_a be_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o do_v it_o import_n that_o he_o give_v to_o the_o predestinate_a the_o name_n of_o church_n for_o that_o name_n sometime_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o universal_a church_n but_o a_o particular_a company_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n or_o of_o the_o ephesian_n and_o when_o s._n paul_n 16.3_o paul_n rom._n 16.3_o say_v salute_v prisca_n and_o aquila_n and_o their_o domestical_a church_n and_o 16.19_o and_o 1._o cor._n 16.19_o again_o aquila_n and_o prisca_n with_o their_o domestical_a church_n salute_v you_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o name_n of_o church_n be_v take_v by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n s._n gregory_n and_o s._n bernard_n who_o here_o you_o 12._o you_o pag._n 12._o object_n for_o they_o all_o give_v that_o name_n to_o the_o just_a and_o predestinate_a by_o reason_n they_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o church_n sect_n iii_o your_o three_o argument_n you_o 16._o you_o pag._n 16._o say_v though_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o as_o yourselves_o confess_v that_o without_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n yet_o have_v you_o confess_v two_o sort_n of_o christian_a professor_n namely_o excommunicate_v and_o catechumenist_n to_o be_v actual_o save_v albeit_o no_o member_n of_o your_o roman_a church_n so_o you_o infer_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n sir_n you_o know_v that_o bellarmine_n who_o here_o you_o cite_v express_o 6._o express_o l._n 3_o de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la c._n 6._o declare_v that_o when_o we_o say_v none_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n we_o speak_v only_o of_o such_o as_o neither_o be_v in_o the_o church_n real_o nor_o intentional_o by_o desire_n but_o that_o if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n either_o real_o or_o at_o least_o by_o desire_n as_o catechumenist_n and_o some_o excommunicat_o be_v they_o may_v be_v save_v which_o doctrine_n both_o he_o &_o other_o catholic_a divine_n approve_v and_o it_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o you_o know_v not_o how_o to_o disprove_v it_o but_o by_o 16._o by_o pag._n 16._o that_o as_o for_o be_v save_v only_o by_o desire_n or_o vow_n of_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o wild_a and_o extravagant_a piece_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o own_o jesuit_n suarez_n pardon_v i_o syr._n this_o be_v not_o suarez_n his_o censure_n but_o a_o untruth_n of_o you_o for_o suarez_n speak_v of_o excommunicat_o 14._o excommunicat_o de_fw-fr trio_o virt_n d._n 9_o sect_n 1._o n._n 14._o say_v that_o those_o divine_n which_o hold_v they_o not_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n real_o but_o only_o by_o desire_n differ_v not_o from_o he_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o only_o in_o manner_n of_o speech_n now_o he_o defend_v that_o both_o excommunicat_o &_o catechumenist_n be_v in_o the_o church_n actual_o and_o real_o which_o also_o valentia_n hold_v of_o 15._o of_o tom._n 3._o d._n 1._o q._n 1._o punct_a 7._o §._o 14._o &_o 15._o excommunicat_o on_o who_o therefore_o you_o d._n you_o pag._n 15._o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr d._n say_v that_o the_o church_n catholic_a be_v compare_v by_o s._n peter_n to_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n from_o whence_o you_o infer_v that_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o deluge_n all_o which_o be_v within_o the_o ark_n be_v save_v and_o all_o without_o it_o be_v drown_v although_o they_o desire_v never_o so_o much_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o ark_n so_o whosoever_o be_v essential_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v possible_o perish_v and_o contrary_o whosoever_o be_v not_o a_o real_a and_o vital_a member_n therein_o can_v but_o perish_v so_o you_o reason_v the_o matter_n misunderstanding_n s._n peter_n for_o he_o compare_v not_o the_o ark_n of_o no_n to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n wherein_o your_o argument_n hold_v not_o for_o though_o in_o the_o deluge_n none_o be_v save_v but_o only_o they_o which_o actual_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n some_o be_v save_v which_o never_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n as_o diverse_a martyr_n that_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o own_o blood_n &_o you_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n who_o die_v unbaptise_v but_o admit_v the_o ark_n of_o no_n to_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o so_o it_o be_v often_o take_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n yet_o your_o argument_n prove_v nothing_o for_o similitude_n hold_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n wherefore_o i_o answer_v with_o s._n augustine_n 28._o augustine_n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 28._o that_o albeit_o none_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n perish_v in_o the_o deluge_n and_o all_o perish_a that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n yet_o it_o fall_v out_o otherwise_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n represent_v by_o the_o ark_n for_o ill_a catholic_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n not_o only_o by_o desire_n but_o corporal_o and_o real_o perish_v because_o they_o make_v bad_a use_n of_o their_o baptism_n and_o contrary_o other_o that_o believe_v aright_o and_o live_v according_o though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n real_o but_o only_o in_o hart_n and_o desire_n as_o be_v yet_o unbaptise_v be_v save_v from_o whence_o s._n augustine_n conclude_v that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o be_v in_o or_o without_o the_o ark_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o be_v in_o or_o without_o the_o church_n cord_n non_fw-la corpore_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o corporal_o and_o real_o but_o in_o hart_n and_o desire_n which_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v all_o catholic_a divine_n so_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o you_o and_o show_v your_o simplicity_n in_o call_v it_o a_o wild_a and_o extravagant_a piece_n of_o learning_n the_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o church_n be_v like_a to_o the_o ark_n witness_n s._n lucifer_n s._n adverse_a lucifer_n hierome_n be_v that_o as_o the_o ark_n be_v visible_a so_o be_v the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o ark_n there_o be_v creature_n clean_o and_o unclean_a so_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v good_a and_o bad_a and_o as_o in_o the_o ark_n there_o be_v predestinate_a and_o also_o cham_n a_o reprobate_a so_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v both_o predestinate_a and_o reprobate_a wherefore_o this_o comparison_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v of_o the_o ark_n destroy_v your_o own_o doctrine_n sect_n iv_o your_o four_o argument_n your_o four_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n not_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v 17._o be_v pag._n 17._o because_o say_v you_o our_o divine_n that_o speak_v more_o ingenious_o free_o grant_v that_o the_o pontifical_a dignity_n roman_n as_o it_o be_v roman_a be_v not_o from_o divine_a authority_n because_o only_o from_o the_o fact_n of_o peter_n and_o they_o that_o be_v more_o affectionate_a to_o the_o roman_a see_v although_o they_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n yet_o dare_v they_o not_o say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o as_o a_o matter_n probable_a and_o conjectural_a if_o you_o shall_v argue_v thus_o a_o aethyopian_a as_o he_o be_v black_a be_v not_o a_o man_n ergo_fw-la a_o aethyopian_a be_v not_o a_o man_n your_o argument_n be_v a_o sophism_n and_o so_o be_v that_o which_o here_o you_o make_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o as_o a_o aethyopian_a though_o he_o be_v not_o a_o man_n reduplicative_a and_o formaliter_fw-la as_o he_o be_v black_a yet_o he_o be_v a_o man_n as_o he_o be_v a_o rational_a creature_n so_o like_o wise_a though_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n reduplicatiuè_fw-fr as_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o s._n peter_n by_o divine_a institution_n be_v create_v supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n the_o whole_a church_n &_o that_o the_o same_o power_n descend_v from_o he_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o it_o be_v also_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o s._n peter_n fix_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n and_o die_v there_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succede_v he_o in_o his_o see_n and_o supreme_a authority_n of_o prince_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v this_o ever_o question_v by_o any_o but_o heretic_n that_o which_o some_o catholic_a writer_n dispute_v be_v whether_o s._n peter_n have_v any_o command_n from_o christ_n to_o place_v his_o see_n at_o rome_n and_o
she_o be_v but_o antioch_n nor_o shall_v she_o then_o have_v any_o privilege_n of_o not_o err_v in_o faith_n as_o now_o antioch_n have_v not_o since_o the_o removal_n of_o s._n peter_n see_v from_o thence_o but_o therefore_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n against_o which_o you_o write_v this_o grand_a imposture_n be_v at_o this_o present_a the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n or_o while_o hereafter_o she_o shall_v remain_v the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n may_v err_v in_o faith_n be_v to_o argue_v à _fw-fr sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la ad_fw-la sensum_fw-la compositum_fw-la and_o to_o infer_v that_o such_o thing_n as_o perhaps_o be_v possible_a but_o never_o shall_v be_v be_v already_o in_o be_v if_o i_o shall_v argue_v thus_o it_o may_v possible_o come_v to_o pass_v though_o it_o be_v improbable_a that_o the_o metropolitan_a see_v of_o england_n may_v be_v remove_v from_o canterbury_n to_o carlisle_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n be_v not_o now_o the_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o this_o a_o sophism_n and_o so_o be_v you_o some_o of_o our_o divine_n grant_v that_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n which_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n &_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o secure_v she_o from_o all_o error_n in_o faith_n may_v be_v remove_v from_o rome_n though_o there_o appear_v no_o likelihood_n thereof_o ergo_fw-la infer_v you_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o of_o your_o divine_n the_o now_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o mistress_n and_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n but_o may_v now_o fall_v from_o the_o faith_n even_o while_o she_o be_v the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n no_o less_o than_o she_o may_v if_o his_o see_n be_v already_o remove_v from_o thence_o who_o see_v not_o this_o argument_n to_o be_v sophistical_a and_o to_o sophistry_n you_o join_v fraud_n for_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n have_v not_o his_o see_n at_o rome_n by_o divine_a ordinance_n but_o only_o by_o humane_a election_n you_o 21._o you_o pag._n 21._o allege_v suarez_n 10._o suarez_n de_fw-fr trip_n virt_n theol._n disp_n 10._o sect_n 3._o n._n 10._o say_v that_o before_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n nothing_o appear_v of_o any_o such_o ordinance_n either_o in_o scripture_n or_o from_o tradition_n here_o you_o break_v of_o leave_v out_o the_o rest_n of_o suarez_n word_n and_o conceal_v his_o doctrine_n for_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n both_o before_o and_o after_o these_o his_o word_n which_o you_o cull_v out_o he_o express_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v more_o pious_a and_o probable_a that_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n appear_v to_o s._n peter_n command_v he_o to_o place_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n which_o he_o ptove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o ancient_a father_n and_o by_o other_o argument_n all_o which_o you_o conceal_v and_o cite_v he_o for_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n the_o same_o abuse_n you_o offer_v to_o valentia_n bellarmine_n and_o azor._n for_o all_o these_o prove_v with_o many_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o other_o forcible_a argument_n that_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n hold_v it_o for_o certain_a and_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n not_o to_o be_v safe_a though_o not_o express_o the_o fide_fw-la sect_n vii_o your_o seven_o argument_n that_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v canonical_o choose_v be_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n all_o catholic_n believe_v as_o undoubted_a matter_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o this_o individual_a person_n v._o g._n vrban_n the_o eight_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n though_o the_o more_o probable_a opinion_n of_o divine_n hold_v it_o also_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n yet_o diverse_a other_o defend_v that_o it_o be_v only_o of_o moral_a certaynty_a you_o not_o know_v how_o to_o solve_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o first_o opinion_n otherwise_o then_o by_o rail_v against_o it_o fine_a it_o pag._n 23._o fine_a &_o call_v it_o a_o jesuitical_a faith_n both_o gross_o false_a &_o wicked_o blasphemous_a assume_v the_o second_o as_o grant_v which_o i_o with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o first_o opinion_n do_v not_o grant_v but_o deny_v for_o the_o church_n propose_v unto_o we_o this_o individual_a man_n vrban_n the_o eight_o as_o true_a pope_n it_o be_v not_o only_o moral_o but_o absolute_o and_o infallible_o certain_a that_o in_o the_o person_n of_o vrban_n the_o eight_o be_v find_v all_o the_o condition_n of_o true_a baptism_n ordination_n election_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o requisite_a for_o a_o true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o the_o church_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v err_v in_o propose_v other_o verity_n of_o faith_n so_o nether_a in_o propose_v this_o man_n to_o be_v the_o true_a head_n and_o lawful_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n wherefore_o our_o belief_n that_o this_o man_n be_v true_a pope_n be_v not_o humane_a moral_a and_o fallible_a but_o divine_a and_o infallible_a unless_o you_o will_v question_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v it_o humane_a and_o fallible_a yea_o even_o in_o the_o other_o opinion_n though_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o individual_a man_n be_v true_a pope_n yet_o the_o author_n thereof_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o theological_a conclusion_n so_o certain_a that_o whosoever_o shall_v deny_v it_o be_v worthy_a of_o flame_n sect_n viii_o your_o eight_o argument_n your_o eight_o argument_n 27._o argument_n pag._n 25._o 26._o 27._o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o repetition_n of_o what_o you_o have_v say_v in_o the_o former_a section_n without_o any_o addition_n of_o new_a proof_n unless_o to_o prove_v your_o doctrine_n be_v to_o rail_v against_o we_o call_v it_o new_a false_a scandalous_a pernicious_a heretical_a blasphemous_a and_o we_o perjure_a person_n all_o which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o empty_a froth_n of_o injurious_a word_n deserve_v no_o other_o answer_n but_o contempt_n chap._n vi_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n in_o this_o matter_n you_o whole_o mistake_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n for_o when_o we_o demand_v which_o church_n be_v the_o head_n the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n the_o question_n be_v not_o which_o church_n be_v first_o found_v if_o you_o speak_v of_o priority_n of_o time_n or_o antiquity_n and_o call_v those_o church_n mother_n of_o all_o such_o as_o be_v found_v after_o they_o we_o grant_v that_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o mother_n church_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o roman_a in_o the_o same_o sense_n a_o daughter_n both_o to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o antioch_n and_o all_o other_o that_o be_v found_v before_o she_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v present_a at_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n call_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o church_n 9_o church_n theodor._n l._n 5._o histor_n c._n 9_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o question_n for_o you_o know_v and_o set_v it_o down_o as_o our_o doctrine_n 38._o doctrine_n pag._n 29._o &_o 38._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v the_o mother_n church_n of_o all_o church_n because_o s._n peter_n be_v constitute_v by_o christ_n the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v you_o know_v right_a well_o that_o the_o mother-hood_n which_o we_o attribute_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o priority_n of_o time_n but_o of_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n ground_v on_o the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n for_o as_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o transcendent_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o church_n he_o be_v and_o in_o his_o successor_n be_v the_o father_n and_o head_n of_o all_o bishop_n so_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o say_v s._n chrysologus_fw-la eutych_n chrysologus_fw-la epist._n ad_fw-la eutych_n peter_n still_o live_v and_o govern_v be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n and_o unto_o which_o say_v s._n 3._o s._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o irenaeus_n all_o church_n be_v necessary_o to_o agree_v by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n she_o be_v call_v by_o s._n irenaeus_n ibid._n irenaeus_n ibid._n and_o origen_n 12._o origen_n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 6._o hist_o c._n 12._o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n and_o by_o s._n cyprian_n praelat_fw-la cyprian_n de_fw-fr simplicit_fw-la praelat_fw-la the_o root_n the_o fountain_n and_o head_n of_o episcopal_a power_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o priestly_a unity_n begin_v 3._o begin_v l._n 1._o ep_v 3._o and_o from_o the_o same_o ground_n
peter_n and_o again_o those_o letter_n be_v not_o of_o orthodox_n bishop_n but_o of_o the_o arian_n assemble_v in_o their_o false_a council_n at_o antioch_n who_o with_o a_o heretical_a pride_n stomach_v at_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o as_o sozomene_n there_o report_v by_o the_o dignity_n and_o prerogative_n of_o his_o see_n he_o have_v restore_v to_o their_o church_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n of_o constantinople_n and_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n who_o they_o have_v depose_v and_o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o for_o their_o unjust_a proceed_n against_o they_o but_o yet_o their_o writing_n be_v more_o tolerable_a than_o you_o for_o though_o to_o magnify_v themselves_o they_o allege_v that_o the_o doctor_n of_o christian_a religion_n come_v first_o from_o the_o east_n to_o rome_n yet_o withal_o they_o acknowledge_v ibid._n acknowledge_v sozom._n ibid._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n obtain_v the_o prize_n of_o honour_n from_o they_o all_o as_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n the_o metropolitan_a of_o religion_n a_o truth_n which_o you_o here_o conceal_v and_o every_o where_n deny_v but_o you_o tell_v we_o 30._o we_o pag._n 29._o 30._o that_o bellarmine_n ground_v the_o motherhood_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n on_o a_o false_a principle_n take_v out_o of_o the_o counterfeit_a epistle_n of_o anacletus_fw-la which_o be_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v their_o episcopal_a ordination_n of_o pastorship_n from_o peter_n which_o principle_n be_v deny_v by_o azor_n and_o suarez_n here_o you_o speak_v untrue_o and_o contradict_v yourself_o for_o as_o you_o confess_v 38._o confess_v pag._n 38._o bellarmine_n ground_v the_o monarchy_n of_o s._n peter_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n math._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o on_o the_o same_o passage_n as_o also_o upon_o those_o other_o word_n john_n 21._o feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n by_o which_o christ_n make_v he_o pastor_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n not_o only_a bellarmine_n but_o all_o catholic_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n ground_n their_o belief_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a authority_n and_o motherhood_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherefore_o bellarmine_n here_o allege_v by_o you_o out_o of_o those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n suppose_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o undoubted_a matter_n of_o faith_n and_o from_o thence_o infer_v probable_o as_o a_o singular_a privilege_n of_o s._n peter_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v their_o episcopal_a ordination_n from_o he_o and_o prove_v the_o same_o not_o only_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o anacletus_fw-la which_o you_o be_v please_v 34._o please_v pag._n 29._o &_o 34._o to_o call_v counterfeit_a and_o bastardly_a ground_v yourself_o on_o the_o testimony_n of_o cusanus_fw-la in_o a_o prohibit_v work_n and_o which_o you_o know_v he_o himself_o have_v retract_v but_o out_o of_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o s._n cyprian_n of_o innocentius_n the_o first_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n of_o julius_n the_o first_o and_o leo_n the_o great_a all_o which_o you_o imposterous_o conceal_v this_o deduction_n of_o bellarmine_n though_o it_o follow_v probable_o yet_o not_o so_o necessary_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n any_o way_n depend_v thereon_o and_o therefore_o other_o learned_a divine_n and_o in_o particular_a azor_n and_o suarez_n who_o no_o less_o firm_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n than_o bellarmine_n do_v be_v herein_o of_o a_o different_a opinion_n from_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n by_o peter_n but_o immediate_o by_o christ_n himself_o which_o say_v you_o 31._o you_o pag._n 29._o &_o 31._o they_o maintain_v upon_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n out_o of_o direct_a scripture_n accompany_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o divine_n and_o because_o you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o in_o their_o opinion_n none_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v by_o peter_n you_o set_v down_o in_o a_o different_a letter_n these_o word_n as_o they_o mitio_fw-la they_o pag._n 30._o mitio_fw-la mathias_n have_v his_o ordination_n to_o the_o bishopric_n which_o judas_n lose_v not_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o peter_n but_o by_o lot_n immediate_o from_o god_n and_o s._n paul_n he_o not_o by_o s._n peter_n but_o by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n even_o immediate_o from_o christ._n but_o your_o deal_n be_v insufferable_a for_o these_o word_n be_v not_o they_o but_o feign_v by_o yourself_o and_o false_o father_v on_o they_o and_o as_o the_o word_n be_v not_o they_o so_o nether_a be_v the_o doctrine_n for_o when_o they_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n immediate_o by_o christ_n they_o speak_v not_o of_o mathias_n and_o paul_n but_o only_o of_o those_o twelve_o which_o christ_n call_v and_o converse_v with_o in_o his_o life_n time_n as_o suarez_n express_o declare_v 7._o declare_v de_fw-fr trip_n virt_n theol._n disp_n 10_o sect_n 1._o n._n 7._o prove_v withal_o that_o both_o mathias_n and_o paul_n be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n immediate_o by_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o apostle_n s_o their_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o also_o for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v s._n paul_n he_o confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o s._n leo._n again_o whereas_o you_o say_v they_o maintain_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n immediate_o by_o christ_n out_o of_o direct_a scripture_n accompany_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o s._n augustine_n you_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o a_o untruth_n for_o albeit_o suarez_n in_o proof_n of_o his_o opinion_n allege_v the_o gloss_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n god_n place_v in_o his_o church_n first_o apostles_n etc._n etc._n yet_o he_o neither_o urge_v these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n nor_o any_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o that_o purpose_n nor_o any_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n save_v one_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o question_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v because_o when_o it_o be_v allege_v against_o you_o you_o reject_v it_o with_o contempt_n mark_fw-mi contempt_n pag._n 50._o mark_fw-mi as_o heretical_a &_o contrary_a to_o s._n augustine_n but_o because_o you_o conceive_v that_o here_o it_o make_v for_o your_o purpose_n you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v s._n augustine_n so_o inconstant_a and_o contradictorious_a be_v you_o to_o yourself_o and_o i_o must_v here_o also_o advertise_v you_o of_o your_o absurd_a manner_n of_o argue_v while_o you_o frame_v a_o syllogism_n 31._o syllogism_n pag._n 30._o fin_n 31._o assume_v for_o your_o mayor_n proposition_n out_o of_o bellarmine_n that_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o s._n peter_n and_o out_o of_o suarez_n &_o azor_n for_o your_o minor_n that_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v not_o ordain_v by_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v two_o contradictory_n as_o there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o senseless_a that_o will_v defend_v two_o opinion_n plain_o contradictory_n so_o there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o foolish_a that_o will_v grant_v both_o the_o premise_n of_o this_o your_o syllogism_n which_o yet_o he_o must_v do_v that_o will_v allow_v your_o argument_n to_o be_v good_a he_o that_o will_v defend_v bellarmine_n opinion_n will_v deny_v your_o minor_n and_o he_o that_o will_v hold_v with_o azor_n and_o suarez_n will_v deny_v your_o mayor_n and_o so_o your_o consequent_a in_o both_o the_o opinion_n be_v false_a for_o what_o else_o can_v a_o consequent_a be_v that_o be_v infer_v out_o of_o two_o premise_n contradictory_n to_o themselves_o moreover_o you_o say_v 35._o say_v pag._n 34._o sine_fw-la 35._o the_o nation_n of_o britain_n by_o our_o own_o account_n receive_v the_o gospel_n cardinal_n baronius_n and_o suarez_n acknowledge_v thus_o much_o out_o of_o most_o ancient_a record_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o joseph_n of_o arimathia_n in_o the_o 35._o year_n of_o christ_n two_o year_n before_o peter_n do_v find_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n where_o he_o be_v seat_v 7._o year_n before_o he_o found_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o britain_n be_v plant_v a_o church_n nine_o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o church_n in_o rome_n and_o hereby_o so_o much_o her_o elder_a sister_n so_o you_o not_o without_o ignorance_n and_o falsehood_n for_o you_o set_v down_o this_o acknowledgement_n in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o the_o word_n of_o baronius_n and_o suarez_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o they_o nor_o of_o any_o of_o the_o other_o author_n who_o you_o name_v but_o your_o own_o fiction_n they_o indeed_o acknowledge_v that_o joseph_n of_o arimathia_n come_v into_o britain_n but_o that_o his_o come_n
this_o purpose_n where_o withal_o he_o show_v that_o caluin_n to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o the_o former_a corrupt_v the_o facred_a text_n the_o like_a be_v also_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o prophet_n 60.14_o prophet_n cap._n 60.14_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a power_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n which_o be_v his_o church_n where_o he_o mention_v this_o promise_n make_v unto_o it_o the_o child_n of_o they_o that_o humble_v thou_o shall_v come_v crouch_v to_o thou_o and_o all_o that_o detract_v from_o thou_o shall_v adore_v the_o step_n of_o thy_o foot_n in_o which_o word_n be_v plain_o foretell_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o her_o visible_a head_n on_o earth_n a_o honour_n which_o caluin_n upon_o this_o very_a place_n confess_v not_o to_o exceed_v that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n who_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o church_n and_o leo_n de_fw-fr castro_n upon_o the_o same_o text_n out_o of_o a_o very_a ancient_a record_n of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n benedict_n concern_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n report_v that_o king_n in_o ancient_a time_n go_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o bishop_n do_v prostrate_v themselves_o before_o they_o and_o kiss_v the_o ground_n not_o rise_v until_o the_o bishop_n descend_v from_o their_o seat_n do_v take_v they_o up_o in_o their_o arm_n and_o place_v they_o in_o throne_n answerable_a to_o their_o princely_a dignity_n to_o this_o purpose_n also_o make_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n hierome_n hieroso_n hierome_n ep._n ad_fw-la pammach_n advers_a error_n joan._n hieroso_n who_o speak_v of_o s._n epiphanius_n say_v a_o great_a number_n of_o all_o age_n and_o sex_n do_v flock_n unto_o he_o offer_v their_o little_a one_o and_o kiss_v his_o foot_n and_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n timoth_n chrysostome_n hom._n 14._o in_o priorem_fw-la ad_fw-la timoth_n exhort_v the_o people_n to_o prostrate_v themselves_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o monk_n &_o kiss_v they_o draw_v near_o touch_v their_o holy_a foot_n for_o it_o be_v a_o far_o great_a honour_n to_o touch_v their_o foot_n then_o to_o touch_v the_o head_n of_o other_o man_n it_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o pater_fw-la time_n of_o the_o church_n no_o disparagement_n to_o the_o great_a prince_n to_o prostrate_v themselves_o either_o to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o bishop_n or_o to_o other_o holy_a servant_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o kiss_v the_o hem_n of_o their_o garment_n and_o their_o foot_n because_o as_o alexander_n the_o great_a ult._n great_a apud_fw-la joseph_n do_v antiq_n l._n â1_n ãâã_d ult._n adore_a jaddus_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o jew_n know_v and_o testify_v that_o he_o do_v in_o he_o exhibit_v that_o honour_n to_o god_n who_o priest_n he_o be_v so_o christian_n emperor_n and_o king_n when_o they_o adore_v the_o pope_n kiss_v his_o foot_n do_v it_o to_o honour_n christ_n in_o he_o to_o who_o that_o honour_n redound_v even_o as_o the_o honour_n do_v to_o a_o ambassador_n redound_v to_o the_o king_n his_o master_n and_o as_o prince_n by_o exhibit_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n no_o way_n disparage_v their_o royal_a greatness_n so_o neither_o be_v the_o acceptance_n thereof_o any_o note_n of_o pride_n in_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o accept_v it_o not_o for_o his_o own_o sanctity_n or_o for_o any_o other_o personal_a quality_n as_o he_o be_v a_o private_a man_n but_o only_o for_o the_o public_a authority_n and_o spiritual_a power_n which_o he_o receave_v from_o christ_n and_o which_o proper_o and_o principal_o be_v of_o christ_n who_o be_v honour_v and_o adore_v in_o his_o vicar_n as_o tertullian_n note_v say_v 10._o say_v vbi_fw-la sup_n cap._n 10._o when_o thou_o cast_v thyself_o down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o thy_o brethren_n thou_o touch_v christ_n thou_o adore_v christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v on_o his_o shoe_n a_o cross_n which_o the_o faithful_a kiss_n to_o signify_v that_o they_o exhibit_v not_o that_o honour_n to_o he_o but_o in_o he_o to_o christ_n who_o person_n he_o represent_v and_o final_o whereas_o you_o object_n 46_o object_n pag._n 46_o that_o s._n peter_n abhor_v this_o pride_n when_o cornelius_n prostrate_v himself_o unto_o he_o i_o answer_v with_o s._n hierome_n vigilant_a hierome_n l._n adverse_a vigilant_a that_o cornelius_n conceive_v peter_n to_o be_v some_o god_n as_o the_o lycaonian_o think_v of_o paul_n &_o barnaby_n and_o therefore_o prostrate_v himself_o to_o honour_v he_o with_o the_o supreme_a adoration_n of_o latria_n due_a to_o god_n alone_o as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o s._n peter_n answer_n to_o he_o 10.26_o he_o act._n 10.26_o arise_v for_o i_o also_o be_o a_o man_n this_o kind_n of_o adoration_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v offer_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o will_v admonish_v and_o forbid_v he_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v cornelius_n but_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o as_o some_o father_n expound_v cornelius_n adore_v not_o s._n peter_n as_o a_o god_n but_o as_o a_o man_n yet_o s._n peter_n with_o great_a reason_n forbid_v he_o for_o he_o adore_v he_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n who_o vicar_n he_o be_v but_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o and_o in_o like_a case_n the_o pope_n will_v also_o forbid_v any_o man_n to_o adore_v he_o but_o he_o know_v and_o so_o do_v you_o that_o the_o cause_n why_o catholic_n exhibit_v that_o honour_n to_o he_o be_v the_o excellent_a power_n give_v he_o by_o christ_n or_o rather_o christ_n himself_o govern_n his_o church_n in_o his_o vicar_n which_o adoration_n be_v good_a and_o please_v to_o god_n both_o as_o it_o be_v exhibit_v by_o the_o faithful_a and_o as_o it_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o pope_n your_o four_o objection_n be_v 46._o be_v pag._n 46._o that_o s._n peter_n have_v no_o canon_n to_o direct_v the_o apostle_n sir_n the_o apostle_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n need_v no_o humane_a canon_n nor_o constitution_n for_o their_o own_o direction_n but_o for_o the_o direction_n of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a pastor_n they_o make_v ecclesiastical_a canon_n which_o s._n peter_n as_o their_o head_n confirm_v and_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o s._n clement_n his_o disciple_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v &_o he_o commit_v they_o to_o write_v leave_v they_o to_o posterity_n as_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o know_v that_o your_o magdeburgian_n centurist_n cavil_v against_o they_o as_o false_a &_o suppositious_a but_o withal_o i_o know_v that_o diverse_a of_o those_o canon_n be_v allege_v by_o many_o ancient_a father_n by_o many_o counsel_n and_o confirm_v by_o late_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o insert_v word_n by_o word_n into_o they_o as_o franciscus_n turrianus_n have_v learned_o demonstrate_v x_o apostol_n x_o l._n 1._o pro_fw-la canon_n apostol_n &_o vindicate_v they_o from_o the_o magdeburgian_n calumny_n your_o five_o and_o six_o argument_n be_v 46._o be_v pag._n 46._o that_o s._n peter_n make_v no_o claim_n nor_o yet_o admittance_n of_o any_o appeal_n from_o the_o other_o apostle_n no_o reservation_n of_o any_o great_a case_n as_o by_o special_a prerogative_n due_a to_o himself_o to_o wit_n of_o admit_v any_o out_o of_o the_o diocese_n of_o another_o absolve_a those_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o another_o of_o canonise_a saint_n of_o confirm_v synod_n of_o grant_v plenary_a indulgence_n etc._n etc._n who_o see_v not_o the_o futility_n of_o these_o objection_n for_o first_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v in_o grace_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v wrong_v their_o subject_n in_o which_o case_n only_o appeal_v be_v lawful_a 2._o i_o have_v already_o show_v â_o show_v chap._n â_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o that_o great_a case_n concern_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v reserve_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o he_o resolve_v the_o same_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o jerusalem_n preside_v in_o it_o and_o when_o the_o pope_n personal_o preside_v in_o a_o council_n there_o need_v no_o other_o confirmation_n 3._o when_o christ_n make_v peter_n head_n of_o his_o whole_a church_n he_o give_v he_o power_n to_o bind_v &_o lose_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o thereby_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v delinquent_n in_o whatsoever_o diocese_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o likewise_o to_o absolve_v they_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n as_o also_o to_o bind_v by_o excommunication_n and_o absolve_v from_o the_o same_o and_o final_o to_o release_v the_o penalty_n due_a to_o sin_n by_o indulgence_n out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v which_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n he_o limit_v not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n only_o but_o whether_o peter_n exercise_v this_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v and_o pardon_v by_o
word_n which_o you_o object_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n give_v equal_a power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o give_v to_o they_o all_o equal_a authority_n to_o preach_v throughout_o the_o world_n to_o reveal_v matter_n of_o faith_n assurance_n of_o infallibility_n to_o make_v canonical_a scripture_n to_o institute_v the_o first_o mission_n of_o pastor_n to_o remit_v sin_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o like_a in_o this_o sense_n he_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n endow_v with_o like_a fellowship_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o these_o apostolical_a function_n over_o the_o faithful_a to_o who_o he_o send_v they_o but_o s._n cyprian_n say_v not_o that_o christ_n make_v all_o the_o apostle_n equal_a among_o themselves_o exempt_n they_o from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o exercise_v this_o power_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a for_o he_o give_v it_o they_o with_o subordination_n to_o he_o as_o to_o their_o superior_a peter_n say_v s._n leo_n assumpt_n leo_n serm._n â_o in_o aânivers_n suae_fw-la assumpt_n be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o apostle_n &_o if_o christ_n will_v have_v they_o to_o have_v any_o thing_n common_a with_o he_o he_o give_v it_o they_o not_o but_o by_o he_o and_o this_o be_v declare_v and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o yield_v by_o optatus_n &_o s._n hierome_n and_o by_o s._n cyprian_n himself_o in_o that_o very_a place_n which_o you_o object_n for_o the_o contrary_n in_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n say_v optatus_n parmân_n optatus_n l._n â_o count_v parmân_n be_v set_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v also_o call_v cephas_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o all_o and_o that_o the_o other_o apostle_n may_v not_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o a_o several_a chair_n but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o against_o this_o only_a chair_n shall_v erect_v another_o the_o church_n say_v s._n hierome_n 14._o hierome_n l._n 1._o advers_a lovin_v c._n 14._o be_v build_v upon_o peter_n &_o though_o else_o where_o it_o be_v also_o build_v upon_o the_o rest_n yet_o among_o the_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o end_n that_o a_o head_n be_v make_v occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o s._n cyprian_n eccles_n cyprian_n l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n christ_n to_o manifest_a unity_n constitute_v one_o chair_n and_o ordain_v the_o original_n of_o unity_n begin_v from_o one_o give_v the_o primacy_n to_o peter_n that_o so_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o one_o chair_n may_v be_v manifest_v and_o then_o declare_v you_o that_o have_v forsake_v this_o original_n of_o unity_n s._n peter_n chair_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v to_o have_v lose_v the_o faith_n and_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o addoth_a he_o that_o keep_v not_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v he_o believe_v himself_o to_o hold_v the_o faith_n he_o that_o resist_v the_o church_n he_o that_o forsake_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v do_v he_o think_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n so_o s._n cyprian_n equal_v you_o with_o the_o novatians_n for_o your_o disclaim_v from_o the_o church_n of_o peter_n chap._n xii_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a have_v in_o vain_a shot_n your_o dart_n at_o s._n peter_n to_z dethrone_v he_o from_o the_o height_n of_o authority_n in_o which_o christ_n have_v place_v he_o you_o come_v now_o to_o try_v their_o force_n against_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n who_o authority_n in_o his_o definition_n of_o faith_n you_o hold_v to_o be_v fallible_a sect_n i._o our_o first_o argument_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o definition_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a we_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n speak_v to_o s._n peter_n 12.32_o peter_n luc._n 12.32_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_z that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o void_a of_o understanding_n say_v leo_n the_o 9_o speak_v impâr_n speak_v ep._n ad_fw-la michael_n impâr_n of_o this_o prayer_n that_o can_v think_v christ_n prayer_n who_o will_n be_v his_o power_n to_o have_v be_v inefficacious_a which_o the_o apostle_n also_o teach_v say_v 5.7_o say_v heb._n 5.7_o he_o be_v hear_v for_o his_o reverence_n and_o for_o this_o prayer_n in_o particular_a christ_n himself_o signify_v so_o much_o say_v i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o for_o what_o will_v his_o prayer_n have_v avayl_v peter_n if_o he_o have_v not_o obtain_v for_o he_o what_o he_o ask_v or_o how_o cold_a his_o brethren_n have_v any_o assurance_n of_o their_o confirmation_n in_o faith_n from_o peter_n if_o peter_n can_v have_v error_n propose_v unto_o they_o falsehood_n for_o truth_n again_o that_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n pray_v not_o in_o mediate_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o for_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o for_o peter_n alone_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o he_o express_v one_o singular_a person_n say_v simon_n sâmon_n for_o in_o the_o greek_a it_o be_v twice_o repeat_v and_o add_v the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o second_o person_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n that_o christ_n pray_v not_o for_o the_o other_o apostle_n you_o grant_v 53._o grant_v pag._n 53._o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o ground_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o peter_n only_o and_o not_o for_o clement_n vrban_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o roman_a see_n but_o your_o argument_n prove_v nothing_o for_o christ_n have_v former_o obtain_v the_o personal_a perseverance_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n when_o he_o say_v seqq_n say_v joan._n 17.9_o &_o seqq_n for_o they_o i_o do_v pray_v etc._n etc._n holy_a father_n keep_v they_o in_o my_o name_n etc._n etc._n i_o pray_v not_o that_o thou_o take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o thou_o preserve_v they_o from_o evil_a and_o therefore_o this_o prayer_n for_o peter_n not_o fail_v in_o faith_n be_v not_o make_v for_o he_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o private_a man_n and_o without_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n of_o supreme_a pastor_n but_o as_o for_o a_o public_a person_n that_o be_v as_o for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o consequent_o for_o his_o see_n and_o all_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o same_o see_v for_o as_o that_o supreme_a dignity_n of_o head_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o peter_n but_o to_o descend_v by_o he_o to_o his_o successor_n so_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o prerogative_n obtain_v for_o peter_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o office_n be_v to_o descend_v to_o clement_n to_o vrban_n and_o to_o whosoever_o have_v hitherto_o or_o shall_v hereafter_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o same_o office_n even_o as_o whatsoever_o prerogative_n be_v grant_v to_o a_o viceroy_n as_o viceroy_n and_o as_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n be_v consequent_o grant_v to_o all_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o same_o office_n but_o you_o object_n 54._o object_n pag._n 54._o that_o this_o privilege_n can_v agree_v to_o peter_n successor_n because_o salas_n the_o jesuit_n teach_v that_o a_o personal_a and_o singular_a privilege_n be_v that_o which_o be_v grant_v to_o a_o individual_a person_n with_o expression_n of_o his_o name_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o extend_v to_o any_o other_o but_o die_v with_o the_o person_n to_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v you_o understand_v not_o salas_n for_o he_o call_v a_o personal_a privilege_n that_o which_o be_v grant_v to_o a_o individual_a person_n as_o he_o be_v a_o pivat_a person_n only_o for_o his_o own_o particular_a good_a &_o not_o by_o reason_n of_o any_o public_a office_n for_o the_o good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o community_n for_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o public_a person_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o office_n as_o this_o be_v to_o s._n peter_n as_o to_z the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o church_n though_o his_o name_n be_v never_o so_o much_o express_v in_o it_o it_o be_v not_o a_o personal_a but_o a_o common_a privileg_n common_a see_v bonacina_n compend_v v._o privileg_n or_o as_o suarez_n 23._o suarez_n l._n 7._o the_o
address_v to_o that_o city_n which_o be_v then_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n still_o until_o this_o day_n have_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o all_o church_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n here_o again_o say_v he_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o be_v place_v first_o because_o the_o roman_n among_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o chief_a &_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v the_o sovereignty_n among_o all_o church_n sect_n vii_o why_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o entitle_v his_o epistle_n catholic_a epistle_n that_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n have_v give_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o preeminency_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n above_o all_o other_o be_v a_o thing_n manifest_a if_o not_o you_o but_o the_o ancient_a father_n may_v be_v the_o judge_n they_o you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o follow_v and_o forsake_v you_o fight_v against_o s._n paul_n and_o they_o against_o this_o truth_n you_o frame_v yet_o two_o argument_n more_o the_o first_o be_v ââ_o be_v pag._n ââ_o that_o whereas_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n peter_n jude_n and_o john_n be_v entitle_v catholic_a epistler_n if_o s._n paul_n have_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o now_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o will_v have_v entitle_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o at_o least_o inscribe_v his_o epistle_n catholic_a the_o second_o be_v ibid._n be_v ibid._n that_o he_o give_v not_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o much_o as_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n which_o yet_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o corinthian_n galathiâns_n and_o thessalonian_o he_o give_v to_o those_o church_n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o give_v to_o any_o of_o their_o epistle_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_a epistle_n that_o title_n be_v prefix_v to_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n peter_n john_n &_o jude_n by_o the_o church_n for_o diverse_a reason_n which_o you_o may_v read_v in_o salmeron_n jacobi_fw-la salmeron_n disp_n 1._o in_o ep._n s._n jacobi_fw-la and_o chief_o because_o as_o s._n augustine_n 14._o augustine_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o oper_n c._n 14._o witness_v they_o be_v write_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o simon_n magus_n defend_v justification_n by_o only_a faith_n wherein_o protestant_n be_v his_o heir_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n their_o epistle_n insist_v so_o much_o on_o good_a work_n and_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n and_o show_v that_o faith_n without_o charity_n be_v dead_a and_o fruitless_a and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n s._n john_n 27._o john_n ep._n 1._o vers_fw-la 24._o &_o 27._o admonish_v the_o faithful_a to_o abide_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n because_o many_o seducer_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n and_o s._n jude_n seqq_n jude_n verse_n 4.8_o &_o seqq_n exhort_v they_o to_o stand_v to_o their_o old_a faith_n show_v they_o by_o example_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a not_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o it_o to_o your_o second_o argument_n i_o may_v answer_v with_o 8._o chrysostome_n that_o they_o which_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n new_o convert_v and_o weak_a s._n paul_n salute_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n to_o comfort_v they_o but_o not_o those_o that_o be_v more_o in_o number_n and_o of_o long_o stand_v as_o the_o roman_n be_v when_o he_o write_v unto_o they_o for_o this_o reason_n i_o say_v that_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o salute_v the_o ephesian_n philippian_n &_o colossian_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n in_o express_a word_n so_o neither_o do_v he_o the_o roman_n but_o only_o virtual_o and_o implicit_o say_v 1.7_o say_v rom._n 1.7_o to_o all_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n the_o belove_a of_o god_n call_v saint_n which_o title_n can_v agree_v to_o any_o congregation_n but_o to_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o rom._n as_o tom._n 13._o disp_n 7._o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la rom._n salmeron_n learned_o prove_v and_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o acknowledge_v say_v sin_n say_v pag._n 7â_n sin_n s._n paul_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n rather_o do_v consist_v in_o the_o professor_n then_o in_o the_o place_n omit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n and_o mention_v only_o the_o person_n say_v to_o the_o saint_n at_o colosse_n to_o they_o at_o rome_n belove_v of_o god_n call_v saint_n but_o because_o you_o mention_v salmerons_n solution_n i_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n notice_n how_o foul_o you_o abuse_v and_o fallify_v he_o he_o give_v three_o solution_n to_o this_o argument_n the_o first_o he_o most_o approve_v and_o this_o you_o whole_o pretermit_v to_o persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o he_o give_v not_o three_o but_o only_o the_o two_o late_a and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o begin_v the_o second_o thus_o posset_n secundò_fw-la commode_v dici_fw-la you_o leave_v out_o fecundo_fw-la that_o this_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v his_o second_o solution_n but_o his_o first_o and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n you_o say_v allata_fw-la alia_fw-la solutione_n ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la redit_fw-la that_o have_v bring_v another_o solution_n he_o return_v to_o this_o say_v but_o the_o first_o solution_n in_o my_o judgement_n be_v more_o soâde_n which_o word_n contain_v a_o most_o notorious_a falsification_n for_o he_o return_v not_o to_o this_o which_o you_o make_v the_o first_o by_o leave_v out_o secundò_fw-la but_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o which_o you_o never_o mention_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o first_o solution_n be_v in_o his_o judgement_n the_o more_o solid_a you_o by_o falsify_v apply_v this_o his_o say_n to_o the_o second_o against_o which_o because_o you_o can_v make_v a_o shift_n to_o cavil_n you_o will_v have_v your_o reader_n think_v it_o be_v salmerons_n first_o solution_n and_o that_o he_o think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o most_o solid_a of_o all_o the_o three_o but_o of_o what_o import_n to_o your_o cause_n be_v this_o juggle_n marry_o that_o because_o in_o the_o second_o solution_n salmeron_n mention_v the_o faction_n that_o be_v then_o in_o rome_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n you_o may_v infer_v that_o s._n paul_n do_v think_v rome_n to_o be_v as_o other_o church_n subject_a to_o the_o alteration_n of_o schism_n and_o faction_n and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o you_o say_v 69._o say_v pag._n 69._o that_o not_o only_o our_o professor_n among_o themselves_o but_o also_o pope_n and_o antipope_n be_v distract_v into_o diverse_a schism_n and_o faction_n etc._n etc._n one_o of_o our_o devout_a doctor_n reckon_v the_o number_n of_o these_o schism_n to_o have_v be_v twenty_o a_o other_o account_v the_o continuance_n of_o one_o of_o they_o to_o have_v endure_v fifty_o year_n our_o devout_a doctor_n who_o you_o mention_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o have_v be_v twenty_o schism_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v stapleton_n the_o place_n in_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o be_v his_o thirteen_o book_n de_fw-fr princip_n doctrine_n cap._n 15._o whereas_o in_o that_o work_n he_o have_v but_o twelve_o book_n in_o all_o but_o be_v it_o that_o there_o have_v ben_fw-mi twenty_o schism_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n schism_n be_v not_o a_o sin_n against_o faith_n but_o against_o charity_n if_o then_o antipope_n or_o other_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o charity_n be_v it_o therefore_o lawful_a for_o you_o to_o renounce_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o schism_n be_v a_o lawful_a cause_n of_o departure_n who_o can_v stay_v in_o your_o protestant_a congregation_n divide_v &_o subdivide_v into_o lutheran_n caluinist_n zwinglian_n brownist_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o sect_n under_o these_o new_a one_o daily_o arise_v among_o you_o as_o separatist_n and_o socinian_n all_o which_o be_v divide_v not_o only_o in_o point_n of_o charity_n but_o in_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o faith_n and_o sure_o you_o be_v ill_o advise_v to_o object_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o justification_n of_o your_o departure_n from_o she_o for_o since_o as_o our_o author_n have_v advertise_v nether_a the_o persecution_n of_o heathen_a emperor_n nor_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n nor_o the_o turk_n nor_o any_o sack_n or_o massacre_n by_o alaricus_n gensericus_fw-la attila_n borbon_n and_o other_o nor_o the_o emulation_n of_o secular_a prince_n be_v they_o king_n or_o emperor_n nor_o the_o many_o schism_n and_o division_n between_o the_o lawful_a pope_n and_o antipope_n nor_o the_o manifold_a difficulty_n &_o danger_n in_o their_o election_n nor_o the_o great_a vice_n which_o have_v be_v note_v in_o some_o of_o their_o person_n nor_o any_o scandal_n have_v have_v power_n to_o overthrow_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o they_o have_v do_v the_o church_n
itself_o but_o one_o church_n govern_v another_o as_o the_o metropolitan_a do_v the_o suffragans_fw-la &_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n church_n rule_v all_o other_o of_o the_o world_n nor_o be_v this_o explication_n of_o less_o force_n becauss_v he_o say_v that_o she_o govern_v in_o the_o region_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o he_o say_v it_o not_o to_o limit_v her_o government_n but_o to_o express_v the_o place_n in_o which_o she_o be_v seat_v and_o from_o whence_o she_o govern_v all_o other_o church_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o by_o call_v she_o the_o church_n that_o govern_v and_o not_o limit_v her_o government_n to_o anyone_o church_n or_o number_n of_o church_n he_o declare_v she_o to_o be_v head_n &_o governess_n absolute_o of_o all_o church_n for_o as_o s._n bernard_n speak_v of_o this_o subject_n say_v at_o say_v l._n 2._o the_o consider_v at_o where_o there_o be_v no_o limitation_n nothing_o be_v except_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n theodoret_n long_v before_o have_v say_v leon._n say_v ep._n ad_fw-la leon._n the_o roman_a see_v have_v the_o stern_a of_o government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n this_o to_o be_v the_o genume_n sense_n of_o s._n ignatius_n his_o word_n casaubon_n and_o you_o peradventure_o do_v see_v and_o therefore_o to_o give_v a_o expedite_a solution_n you_o reject_v the_o whole_a epistle_n say_v mark_fw-mi say_v pag._n 100_o mark_fw-mi no_o man_n skilful_a in_o greek_a will_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v write_v by_o s._n âgnatius_fw-la but_o this_o solution_n be_v explode_v by_o euscbius_n 30._o euscbius_n l._n 3._o hist._n c._n 30._o and_o s._n hierome_n scriptor_n hierome_n l._n the_o scriptor_n who_o may_v be_v casaubon_n and_o your_o master_n in_o greek_a and_o yet_o affirm_v s._n ignatius_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o epistle_n and_o transcribe_v a_o part_n thereof_o yent_a to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o as_o also_o do_v s._n irenaeus_n 109._o irenaeus_n l._n 4._o advers_a haeres_fw-la apud_fw-la baron_n anno_o 109._o to_o show_v the_o admirable_a spirit_n and_o fervour_n of_o that_o holy_a bishop_n have_v propose_v these_o argument_n of_o casaubon_n you_o object_n out_o of_o your_o own_o observation_n 100_o observation_n pag._n 100_o that_o s._n ignatius_n exhort_v the_o trallian_n unto_o obedience_n to_o bishop_n instance_v equal_o in_o timothy_n s._n paul_n scholar_n as_o in_o anacletus_fw-la successor_n to_o s._n peter_n answer_n you_o may_v by_o the_o like_a argument_n prove_v that_o s._n ignatius_n equal_v priest_n in_o authority_n with_o bishop_n for_o exhort_v the_o trallian_n to_o obedience_n he_o instance_v as_o well_o in_o priest_n as_o in_o the_o bishop_n obey_v say_v he_o trallianos_fw-la he_o ep._n ad_fw-la trallianos_fw-la the_o bishop_n &_o the_o priest_n who_o then_o see_v not_o your_o argument_n to_o be_v a_o childish_a sophism_n sect_n vi_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o renaeus_n say_v you_o 100_o you_o pag._n 100_o for_o direction_n in_o the_o right_n of_o tradition_n refer_v as_o well_o to_o polycarpe_n bishop_n of_o smyrna_n as_o to_o linus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n tertullian_n also_o to_o secure_a christian_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o consult_v with_o the_o mother_n church_n immediate_o found_v by_o the_o apostle_n name_v as_o well_o ephesus_n in_o asia_n and_o corinth_n in_o achaia_n as_o rome_n in_o italy_n and_o for_o the_o person_n mention_v as_o well_o polycarpe_n ordain_v by_o s._n john_n as_o clemens_n by_o peter_n the_o like_a argument_n you_o make_v out_o of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n but_o all_o of_o they_o imposterous_o and_o against_o yourself_o and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o s._n irenaeus_n these_o word_n discite_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la habetis_fw-la romae_fw-la linum_fw-la which_o you_o allege_v as_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o i_o find_v not_o in_o he_o it_o be_v true_a that_o both_o he_o and_o tertullian_n teach_v the_o christian_n of_o their_o time_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n warn_v they_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v from_o the_o apostolical_a church_n that_o be_v from_o the_o church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o by_o apostolical_a man_n as_o timothy_n polycarpe_n and_o other_o their_o disciple_n that_o preach_v the_o same_o faith_n they_o learn_v from_o the_o apostle_n their_o master_n but_o withal_o they_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o chief_a church_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v unto_o and_o by_o who_o authority_n they_o be_v to_o confound_v all_o heretic_n be_v the_o roman_a church_n all_o man_n say_v s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o may_v behold_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v the_o faith_n deliver_v by_o they_o to_o their_o successor_n in_o every_o church_n if_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n and_o we_o can_v number_v the_o bishop_n that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n even_o unto_o we_o who_o neither_o teach_v nor_o know_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o rave_v heretic_n do_v broach_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o long_a business_n to_o number_v the_o succession_n of_o all_o church_n we_o declare_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o most_o great_a most_o ancient_a and_o most_o know_a church_n found_v by_o the_o two_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o tradition_n and_o faith_n it_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o thereby_o we_o confound_v all_o they_o that_o any_o way_n either_o by_o evil_a complacence_n of_o themselves_o or_o vainglory_n or_o blindness_n or_o ill_a opinion_n do_v gather_v otherwise_o then_o they_o ought_v lo_o here_o how_o catholic_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n time_n do_v confound_v all_o heretic_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o that_o see_n and_o he_o yield_v the_o reason_n say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n for_o to_o this_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n all_o church_n must_v necessary_o agree_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o faithful_a of_o what_o place_n soever_o in_o which_o church_n the_o tradition_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v always_o conserve_v and_o in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o he_o reckon_v by_o name_n all_o the_o pope_n from_o s._n peter_n to_o eleutherius_fw-la who_o at_o that_o time_n govern_v the_o church_n ibid._n church_n ibid._n and_o by_o that_o orderly_a and_o never-interrupted_n succession_n he_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o have_v conserve_v unto_o his_o day_n the_o faith_n pure_a and_o entire_a as_o it_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n by_o this_o succession_n that_o doctrine_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v in_o the_o church_n have_v come_v to_o we_o and_o this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n convice_v that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o quicken_a faith_n which_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o this_o day_n be_v conserve_v and_o deliner_v in_o truth_n and_o again_o relate_v to_o this_o place_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n he_o declare_v all_o those_o that_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o it_o to_o be_v schismatic_n or_o heretic_n they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n say_v he_o 41._o he_o l._n 4._o c._n 41._o ought_v to_o obey_v those_o priest_n which_o have_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishoprike_n have_v receive_v the_o assure_a grace_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n and_o we_o ought_v to_o hold_v suspect_v all_o other_o that_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o like_o principal_a succession_n and_o join_v together_o in_o some_o other_o place_n we_o ought_v i_o say_v to_o hold_v they_o as_o heretic_n of_o a_o perverse_a judgement_n or_o as_o schismatic_n and_o selfe-liking_a presumptuous_a fellow_n or_o else_o as_o hypocrite_n that_o work_n for_o lucre_n and_o vainglory_n if_o then_o s._n irenaeus_n in_o his_o day_n think_v it_o a_o argument_n sufficient_a to_o convince_v all_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n because_o they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o peter_n see_v to_o which_o all_o the_o church_n and_o faithful_a of_o the_o world_n must_v necessary_o agree_v how_o much_o more_o convince_a be_v the_o same_o argument_n against_o protestant_n to_o who_o we_o show_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o twelve_o pope_n in_o s._n peter_n see_v as_o s._n irenaeus_n do_v to_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n but_o almost_o of_o 240._o you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o force_n
of_o these_o testimony_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o therefore_o lest_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o pass_v they_o over_o without_o answer_n you_o say_v fine_a say_v pag._n 100_o mark_fw-mi fine_a as_o for_o the_o word_n propter_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la they_o be_v answer_v hereafter_o how_o be_v they_o answer_v first_o you_o bid_v we_o mark_fw-mi we_o pag._n 253._o mark_fw-mi remember_v that_o irenaeus_n be_v he_o which_o consent_v with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n victor_n but_o we_o know_v this_o to_o be_v a_o untruth_n and_o wish_v you_o to_o remember_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v so_o much_o &_o contradict_v yourself_o say_v 131._o say_v pag._n 131._o irenaeus_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o the_o asian_a bishop_n these_o than_o be_v your_o proposition_n irenaus_n consent_v with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n irenaeus_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o the_o asian_a bishop_n reconcile_v they_o 2._o whereas_o s._n iraeneus_n say_v 3._o say_v l._n 3._o c._n 3._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o church_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n you_o answer_v 253._o answer_v pag._n 253._o this_o may_v have_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o imperial_a power_n of_o that_o city_n to_o which_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v bind_v to_o resort_v for_o pay_v of_o tribute_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o province_n to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o their_o office_n but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o answer_n for_o he_o mention_v not_o the_o city_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o this_o church_n say_v he_o all_o church_n must_v of_o necessity_n resort_n again_o they_o which_o be_v to_o resort_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o office_n and_o payment_n of_o tribute_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n only_o but_o s._n irenaeus_n tell_v you_o that_o omnes_fw-la undique_fw-la fideles_fw-la that_o be_v all_z the_o faithful_a and_o all_o the_o church_n not_o only_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v necessary_o to_o repair_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v thereby_o that_o her_o authority_n and_o command_n be_v of_o large_a extent_n then_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o as_o prosper_n true_o say_v 6._o say_v de_fw-fr ingrat_fw-la c_o 2._o &_o de_fw-la vocat_fw-la gent._n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o rome_n the_o see_v of_o peter_n be_v great_a by_o the_o fortress_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o the_o throne_n of_o temporal_a power_n and_o be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n to_o the_o world_n possess_v by_o religion_n what_o she_o do_v not_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n 3._o you_o answer_v 253.254_o answer_v pag._n 253.254_o be_v it_o ecclesiastical_a power_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o recourse_n unto_o it_o absolute_a and_o perpetual_a but_o occasional_a for_o that_o tyme._n this_o be_v as_o untrue_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o resort_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o be_v by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o say_v s._n augustine_n 162._o augustine_n ep._n 162._o have_v always_o flourish_v in_o she_o and_o which_o make_v she_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o so_o long_o as_o she_o shall_v be_v s._n peter_n see_v which_o shall_v be_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o long_o the_o necessity_n of_o all_o other_o church_n resort_v to_o she_o and_o agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o she_o shall_v still_o continue_v sect_n vii_o tertullian_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n tertullian_n agree_v with_o s._n irenaeus_n in_o press_v against_o all_o heretic_n the_o same_o argument_n of_o the_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v ultimo_fw-la see_v l._n 3._o carm._n count_v marcio_n c._n ultimo_fw-la reckon_n all_o the_o pope_n by_o name_n until_o his_o time_n against_o martion_n and_o all_o heretic_n to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v such_o it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o 21._o he_o praescrip_n c._n 21._o that_o all_o doctrine_n which_o agree_v with_o those_o mother_n and_o original_a church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v true_a and_o to_o be_v hold_v as_o certain_a be_v that_o the_o church_n receive_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o be_v to_o be_v account_v false_a and_o erroneous_a and_o speak_v of_o heretic_n 32._o heretic_n ibid._n c._n 32._o if_o there_o be_v any_o of_o they_o that_o darevent_v their_o doctrine_n for_o apostolical_a let_v they_o show_v the_o original_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v the_o order_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o by_o a_o succession_n derive_v from_o the_o beginning_n they_o prove_v their_o first_o bishop_n to_o have_v be_v some_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o apostolical_a man_n that_o persevere_v with_o the_o apostle_n unto_o the_o end_n this_o tertullian_n say_v the_o smyrnaean_n in_o his_o day_n can_v do_v show_v that_o polycarpe_n their_o bishop_n be_v place_v there_o by_o s._n john_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v do_v the_o like_a show_v clement_n ordain_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o same_o she_o can_v do_v at_o this_o day_n show_v that_o all_o her_o bishop_n unto_o vrban_n the_o eight_o which_o now_o possess_v that_o chair_n have_v s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n for_o their_o predecessor_n and_o first_o bishop_n in_o that_o see_v and_o that_o from_o he_o they_o can_v lineal_o derive_v their_o pedigree_n whereas_o no_o heretic_n can_v ever_o show_v any_o such_o descent_n as_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n can_v and_o therefore_o tertullian_n bring_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n upbraid_v they_o and_o all_o heretic_n in_o this_o manner_n 37._o manner_n ibid._n c._n 37._o who_o in_o god_n name_n be_v you_o when_o and_o from_o whence_o come_v you_o hither_o what_o do_v you_o among_o i_o be_v none_o of_o i_o by_o what_o right_a o_o martion_n do_v thou_o cut_v down_o my_o wood_n what_o leave_n have_v thou_o o_o valantine_n to_o turn_v my_o stream_n and_o fountain_n another_o way_n by_o what_o authority_n do_v thou_o remove_v my_o bound_n o_o apelles_n o_o luther_n o_o caluin_n o_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o possession_n be_v i_o i_o have_v it_o of_o old_a i_o enjoy_v it_o before_o you_o i_o can_v derive_v my_o pedigree_n from_o the_o very_a first_o author_n to_o who_o the_o thing_n do_v proper_o belong_v i_o be_o the_o right_a beyre_n to_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o their_o will_n and_o testament_n according_a to_o their_o trust_n and_o charge_v give_v my_o tenure_n stand_v as_o for_o you_o they_o always_o disinherit_v you_o and_o reject_v you_o as_o alien_n yea_o and_o as_o enemy_n in_o this_o very_a manner_n may_v catholic_n with_o great_a reason_n upbraid_v you_o who_o as_o you_o can_v show_v any_o succession_n of_o your_o bishop_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o you_o be_v thereby_o convince_v not_o to_o be_v their_o heir_n but_o stranger_n and_o enemy_n to_o they_o and_o to_o the_o church_n found_v by_o they_o again_o tertullian_n prescribe_v a_o rule_n for_o you_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n say_v 36._o say_v ibid._n c._n 36._o go_v to_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v curious_o exact_a in_o the_o affair_n of_o thy_o salvation_n repair_n to_o the_o apostolical_a church_n etc._n etc._n if_o thou_o be_v a_o neighbour_n to_o italy_n thou_o have_v rome_n from_o whence_o we_o also_o have_v authority_n o_o happy_a church_n into_o which_o the_o apostle_n pour_v all_o their_o doctrine_n together_o with_o their_o blood_n where_o peter_n be_v equal_v to_o our_o saviour_n passion_n where_o paul_n be_v crown_v with_o john_n baptist_n lot_n where_o john_n the_o apostle_n be_v plunge_v into_o boil_a oil_n and_o yet_o not_o hurt_v therewith_o be_v banish_v into_o a_o island_n let_v we_o observe_v what_o this_o church_n have_v learned_a what_o she_o have_v teach_v tertullian_n be_v a_o african_a a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o yet_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v from_o whence_o we_o that_o be_v as_o macerus_n expound_v all_o the_o african_a church_n or_o all_o catholic_n have_v authority_n at_o hand_n for_o our_o defence_n wherefore_o out_o of_o this_o place_n of_o tertullian_n quintinus_n right_o infer_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o from_o her_o first_o foundation_n have_v great_a authority_n above_o all_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o
that_o all_o man_n be_v to_o learn_v from_o she_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o bless_a apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n 30._o valentinus_n ibid._n c._n 30._o prove_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n into_o which_o they_o have_v believe_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n nam_fw-la constat_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o say_v he_o and_o his_o word_n no_o less_o agree_v to_o luther_n and_o caluin_n then_o to_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o first_o believe_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o bless_a bishop_n eleutherius_fw-la for_o their_o turbulent_a spirit_n of_o novelty_n wherewith_o they_o do_v also_o pervert_v their_o brethren_n they_o be_v often_o excommunicate_v and_o at_o length_n cast_v out_o for_o ever_o to_o perpetual_a ruin_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o tertullian_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n 4._o church_n l._n 4._o cont_n marcio_n c._n 4._o the_o head_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o martion_n be_v bear_v at_o sinope_n in_o pontus_n and_o for_o his_o heresy_n and_o lewdness_n of_o life_n excommunicate_v by_o his_o own_o father_n a_o holy_a bishop_n who_o refuse_v to_o absolve_v he_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o seek_v absolution_n but_o his_o father_n oppose_v obtain_v it_o not_o valentine_n be_v as_o egyptian_a bear_v and_o have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n in_o cyprus_n come_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o higinius_n pope_n and_o feign_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o fall_v often_o back_o into_o heresy_n as_o a_o dog_n return_v to_o his_o vomit_n be_v final_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o bless_a pope_n elutherius_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v tertullian_n report_n and_o why_o do_v these_o heretic_n as_o also_o cerdon_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o they_o seek_v absolution_n from_o heresy_n come_v from_o so_o remote_a country_n subject_a to_o other_o patriarch_n and_o why_o from_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o why_o all_o of_o they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a but_o because_o they_o know_v she_o to_o be_v the_o head_n &_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n that_o have_v power_n to_o absolve_v all_o those_o which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o any_o other_o bishop_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o be_v the_o original_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o that_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v out_o of_o her_o bosom_n they_o neither_o be_v nor_o shall_v be_v esteem_v catholic_n nor_o to_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n herby_n it_o appear_v how_o little_a reason_n you_o have_v to_o say_v out_o of_o beatus_fw-la rhenaus_n 1st_a rhenaus_n pag._n 131_o 1st_a though_o tertullian_n give_v a_o honourable_a testimony_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o be_v do_v not_o esteem_v she_o so_o high_o as_o we_o see_v she_o account_v of_o at_o this_o day_n and_o since_o you_o acknowledge_v that_o rhenanus_fw-la his_o mouth_n for_o that_o and_o other_o his_o inconsiderate_a speech_n be_v gag_v by_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la you_o show_v little_a judgement_n in_o object_v his_o authority_n against_o us._n sect_n viii_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n what_o have_v be_v say_v show_v the_o futility_n of_o your_o argument_n out_o of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n which_o be_v like_a to_o the_o two_o former_a out_o of_o s._n iraeneus_n and_o tertullian_n and_o how_o little_a support_v you_o have_v for_o your_o cause_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n he_o will_v testify_v for_o himself_o for_o when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n at_o their_o return_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n defend_v by_o firmilianus_n bishop_n of_o cefarea_n agrippinus_n &_o s._n cyprian_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o many_o other_o wrought_v so_o great_a inconvenience_n that_o it_o give_v a_o pattern_n of_o sacrilege_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o occasion_n of_o error_n to_o some_o catholic_n vincentius_n declare_v how_o stephen_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n suppress_v it_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o say_v he_o â_o he_o l._n count_v propha_fw-la haeres_fw-la novat_fw-la c._n â_o all_o man_n every_o where_o exclame_v against_o the_o novelty_n of_o that_o doctrine_n &_o all_o priest_n in_o all_o place_n each_o one_o according_a to_o his_o zeal_n do_v opppse_n than_o pope_n stephen_n of_o bless_a memory_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v resist_v indeed_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n but_o yet_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n think_v it_o as_o i_o suppose_v reason_n so_o much_o to_o excel_v all_o other_o in_o devotion_n towards_o the_o faith_n as_o he_o do_v surmount_v they_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o place_n to_o conclude_v in_o his_o epistle_n which_o then_o be_v send_v to_o africa_n he_o decree_v the_o same_o in_o these_o word_n let_v nothing_o be_v innovate_v but_o that_o which_o come_v by_o tradition_n be_v observe_v and_o 10._o and_o ibid._n c._n 10._o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n have_v say_v he_o such_o pregnant_a wit_n such_o eloquent_a tongue_n such_o a_o number_n of_o patron_n such_o show_n of_o truth_n such_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n but_o gloss_a after_o a_o new_a and_o naughty_a fashion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o a_o african_a council_n yet_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n declare_v it_o a_o novelty_n be_v of_o so_o great_a force_n that_o after_o he_o have_v condemn_v it_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v abolish_v be_v disannul_v be_v abrogate_a as_o dream_n as_o fable_n as_o superfluous_a and_o afterward_o 43._o afterward_o ibid._n c._n 43._o he_o allege_v as_o witness_n of_o his_o doctrine_n diverse_a greek_a father_n and_o add_v to_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n felix_n martyr_n and_o s._n julius_n both_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o to_o declare_v their_o sovereign_a authority_n he_o call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n and_o he_o conclude_v 45._o ibid._n c._n 45._o lest_o in_o such_o plenty_n of_o proof_n any_o thing_n shall_v be_v want_v we_o have_v add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n a_o double_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o one_o of_o s._n sixtus_n a_o venerable_a man_n that_o now_o honoresh_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o other_o of_o pope_n celestine_n of_o bless_a menory_n his_o predecessor_n and_o their_o decree_n he_o call_v apostolical_a and_o catholic_a decree_n sect_n ix_o other_o observation_n of_o doctor_n morton_n out_o of_o antiquity_n answer_v your_o observation_n be_v seqq_fw-la be_v pag_n 101._o &_o seqq_fw-la that_o s._n athanasius_n s._n augustine_n the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o cauthage_n reckon_v diverse_a bishop_n to_o show_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n with_o they_o name_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o bishop_n and_o write_v both_o to_o he_o &_o they_o and_o consult_v with_o he_o and_o they_o as_o with_o their_o fellow_n bishop_n which_o you_o say_v be_v to_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o many_o mate_n and_o to_o equalise_v other_o bishop_n with_o he_o but_o who_o see_v not_o what_o poor_a stuff_n these_o your_o observation_n be_v for_o if_o one_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n shall_v consult_v with_o his_o parish_n priest_n and_o his_o bishop_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o equalize_v the_o parish_n priest_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o make_v he_o his_o mate_n or_o if_o you_o write_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n i_o shall_v lay_v to_o your_o charge_n that_o by_o consult_v with_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o counsel_n you_o give_v his_o majesty_n so_o many_o mantes_fw-la as_o he_o have_v counsellor_n and_o equalise_v they_o in_o power_n and_o dominion_n with_o he_o will_v you_o not_o think_v mâ_n a_o trifle_a and_o indeed_o a_o childish_a opponent_n how_o then_o shall_v we_o think_v otherwise_o of_o you_o that_o by_o like_a consequence_n go_v about_o to_o equalise_v other_o bishop_n with_o the_o pope_n &_o among_o themselves_o chap._n xvi_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o bishop_n be_v prove_v 1._o because_o julius_n a_o most_o holy_a pope_n in_o his_o three_o epistle_n which_o s._n athanesius_n have_v insert_v into_o his_o second_o apology_n write_v to_o the_o arian_n and_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o right_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v to_o have_v the_o
betake_v yourself_o as_o to_o your_o last_o refuge_n when_o you_o be_v press_v with_o unanswearable_a argument_n be_v a_o mere_a shift_n invent_v to_o delude_v ignorant_a reader_n with_o empty_a word_n void_a of_o truth_n and_o by_o this_o canon_n it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n evident_a that_o the_o primacy_n be_v not_o then_o first_o give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o preserve_v unto_o it_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n your_o second_o argument_n 107._o argument_n pag._n 107._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o late_a roman_a counsel_n be_v bastardly_a and_o illegitimate_a and_o that_o we_o have_v little_a regard_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v take_v out_o of_o theodoret_n writing_n that_o constantine_n the_o great_a require_v in_o that_o synod_n that_o because_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o instruct_v we_o in_o divine_a matter_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v our_o determination_n upon_o question_n from_o word_n which_o be_v divine_o inspire_v and_o then_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o bellarmine_n answer_v thus_o coâstantine_n be_v a_o great_a emperor_n indeed_o but_o no_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v yet_o unbaptise_v and_o therefore_o understand_v not_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n thus_o say_v you_o do_v this_o your_o cardinal_n twit_v and_o taunt_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o godly_a emperor_n and_o as_o the_o steward_n in_o the_o gospel_n injust_o conceal_v from_o his_o reader_n that_o which_o follow_v in_o theodoret_n namely_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o council_n of_o nice_a obey_v the_o voice_n of_o constantine_n so_o you_o as_o you_o be_v wonâ_n for_o first_o you_o falsify_v bellarmine_n who_o say_v not_o that_o constantine_n be_v yet_o unbaptise_v but_o that_o that_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o you_o protestant_n and_o the_o old_a arian_n from_o whence_o he_o argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o you_o that_o this_o testimony_n of_o constantine_n be_v not_o of_o so_o great_a weight_n as_o caluin_n and_o kemnitius_n make_v it_o for_o if_o he_o be_v unbaptise_v he_o can_v then_o be_v no_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v a_o neophyte_n and_o therefore_o not_o so_o well_o skill_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n what_o twiting_n or_o taunt_a of_o that_o godly_a emperor_n your_o find_v in_o this_o answer_n of_o bellarmine_n i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o know_v that_o you_o in_o hold_v constantine_n to_o be_v then_o unbaptise_v both_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v that_o godly_a emperor_n and_o withal_o to_o uphold_v the_o authority_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o arian_n heretic_n who_o to_o make_v he_o a_o patron_n of_o their_o heresy_n give_v out_o that_o he_o be_v not_o baptize_v until_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n and_o that_o then_o he_o receive_v his_o baptism_n from_o eusebius_n b._n of_o nicomedia_n the_o chief_a ringleader_n of_o the_o arian_n faction_n but_o that_o your_o deal_n may_v the_o better_o appear_v it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o bellarmine_n be_v so_o far_o from_o twit_v or_o taunt_a that_o godly_a emperor_n that_o he_o admit_v of_o his_o testimony_n admit_v say_v he_o admissâ_n he_o l._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 11._o §._o admissâ_n the_o authority_n of_o constantine_n i_o say_v that_o in_o all_o those_o doctrine_n which_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n there_o be_v extant_a testimome_v in_o scripture_n out_o of_o which_o if_o they_o be_v right_o understand_v we_o may_v be_v full_o and_o plain_o instruct_v but_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o the_o same_o theodoret_n that_o report_v this_o speech_n of_o constantine_n declare_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a scripture_n be_v produce_v on_o both_o side_n but_o the_o arian_n be_v not_o convince_v with_o they_o because_o they_o expound_v they_o otherwise_o then_o the_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n pious_o understand_v to_o which_o condemnation_n no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v but_o that_o constantine_n assent_v so_o bellarmine_n and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o you_o say_v bellarmine_n cit_v theodoret_n &_o yet_o as_o the_o steward_n in_o the_o gospel_n injust_o conceal_v that_o which_o follow_v in_o he_o namely_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o council_n obey_v the_o voice_n of_o constantine_n you_o wrong_v bellarmine_n and_o a_o buse_n theodoret_n who_o in_o those_o word_n relate_v not_o to_o the_o determine_n of_o controversy_n by_o scripture_n but_o to_o constantine_n exhortation_n make_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o peace_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o which_o say_v theodoret_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o council_n obey_v embrace_v mutual_a concord_n and_o true_a doctrine_n though_o diverse_a arian_n disagree_v some_o of_o who_o name_n he_o there_o express_v this_o you_o injust_o conceal_v like_o the_o ill_a steward_n in_o the_o gospel_n that_o you_o may_v pick_v a_o quarrel_n with_o bellarmine_n in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o i_o may_v add_v that_o as_o s._n augustine_n 23._o augustine_n l._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 23._o and_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n 10._o lyrinensis_n cont._n haer_fw-mi c._n 9_o &_o 10._o have_v testify_v the_o heresy_n of_o rebaptisation_n can_v not_o be_v disprove_v by_o scripture_n but_o be_v condemn_v by_o tradition_n and_o final_o i_o may_v ask_v you_o why_o you_o like_o the_o bad_a steward_n conceal_v what_o theodoret_n write_v in_o that_o very_a place_n namely_o that_o what_o constantine_n say_v he_o speak_v not_o to_o the_o bishop_n as_o their_o head_n but_z as_o a_o son_n that_o love_a peace_n offer_v up_o his_o word_n to_o the_o priest_n as_o to_o his_o father_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o council_n but_o after_o they_o all_o nor_o sit_v down_o but_o with_o their_o leave_n and_o in_o a_o low_a chair_n do_v he_o trow_v you_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n xvii_o the_o second_o general_n council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect_n i._o by_o what_o authority_n this_o council_n be_v call_v bellarmine_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o pope_n universal_a jurisdiction_n allege_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o second_o general_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o pope_n damasus_n say_v they_o be_v gather_v by_o his_o mandate_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o head_n and_o they_o the_o member_n this_o say_v you_o 109._o you_o pag._n 109._o be_v all_o that_o be_v object_v but_o upon_o a_o mistake_n what_o then_o be_v the_o mistake_n because_o bellarmine_n in_o the_o recognition_n of_o his_o work_n afterward_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o second_o general_a synod_n but_o of_o the_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v present_a at_o the_o synod_n and_o meet_v again_o the_o next_o year_n after_o at_o constantinople_n but_o if_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o of_o the_o synod_n why_o do_v you_o speak_v of_o it_o not_o without_o contradiction_n say_v 100l_n say_v pag._n 100l_n the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n do_v indite_v a_o epistle_n margin_n epistle_n pag._n 110._o margin_n and_o inscribe_v it_o thus_o and_o why_o do_v you_o mention_v the_o inscription_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n call_v it_o synodicae_n epistolae_fw-la inscriptio_fw-la the_o inscription_n of_o the_o synodical_a epistle_n and_o why_o do_v theodoret_n 9_o theodoret_n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 9_o style_v it_o libellus_fw-la synodicus_n à _fw-fr concilio_n constantinopolitano_fw-it missus_fw-la a_o synodical_a writ_n send_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n &_o c_o but_o howsoever_o you_o allege_v that_o bellarmine_n acknowledge_v his_o own_o mistake_n be_v a_o mere_a cavil_n nothing_o avail_v your_o cause_n for_o be_v it_o that_o those_o bishop_n write_v not_o their_o epistle_n while_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o council_n but_o when_o they_o meet_v the_o next_o year_n after_o at_o constantinople_n yet_o you_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o bellarmine_n allege_v out_o of_o their_o epistle_n unless_o you_o will_v make_v they_o all_o liar_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o bellarmine_n say_v council_n say_v recogn_n pag._n 46._o in_o hoc_fw-la council_n it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n that_o this_o of_o constantinople_n be_v call_v by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n damasus_n you_o answer_v 109._o answer_v pag._n 109._o that_o in_o proof_n thereof_o he_o refer_v himself_o to_o another_o council_n against_o the_o universal_a current_n of_o history_n which_o with_o general_a consent_n set_v down_o the_o mandate_n of_o emperor_n as_o the_o supreme_a and_o first_o compulsary_a cause_n for_o
mean_n like_o a_o prudent_a and_o solicitous_a pastor_n to_o work_v both_o part_n to_o a_o accord_n and_o establish_v peace_n in_o the_o church_n but_o find_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n violent_a in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o their_o decree_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o venice_n and_o the_o region_n adjoin_v as_o also_o those_o of_o ireland_n follow_v his_o opinion_n &_o rely_v on_o his_o authority_n have_v condemn_v this_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o that_o the_o church_n thereby_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v rend_v in_o sunder_o with_o schism_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n consider_v that_o the_o subject_n of_o that_o contention_n be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o neither_o the_o one_o part_n nor_o the_o other_o any_o way_n repugnant_a to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o s._n gregory_n have_v note_v 37._o note_v l._n 3._o ep_v 37._o but_o a_o thing_n of_o itself_o indifferent_a he_o alter_v his_o opinion_n and_o yield_v to_o confirm_v this_o decree_n purchase_v to_o himself_o that_o commendation_n which_o s._n augustine_n 162._o augustine_n ep._n 162._o give_v to_o the_o most_o famous_a governor_n of_o god_n people_n both_o in_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v that_o they_o tolerate_v for_o the_o good_a of_o unity_n that_o which_o they_o hate_v for_o the_o love_n of_o equity_n and_o imitate_v the_o example_n of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a who_o testify_v of_o himself_o 14._o himself_o ep._n 14._o that_o for_o the_o love_n of_o peace_n he_o yield_v to_o confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o maximus_n b._n of_o antioch_n which_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n without_o any_o example_n &_o against_o the_o canon_n have_v presumptuous_o usurp_v to_o himself_o nor_o can_v vigilius_n herein_o be_v argue_v of_o levity_n for_o if_o he_o alter_v his_o mind_n he_o do_v it_o upon_o just_a cause_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o schism_n and_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o have_v first_o give_v his_o voice_n for_o the_o abolish_n of_o circumcision_n 15.11_o circumcision_n act._n 15.11_o afterward_o upon_o just_a cause_n circumcise_v timothy_n 16.3_o timothy_n act._n 16.3_o and_o yet_o again_o reprehend_v peter_n that_o by_o his_o dissimulation_n he_o induce_v the_o gentile_n to_o circumcision_n and_o other_o jewish_a ceremony_n 14._o ceremony_n gal._n 2.11_o &_o 14._o you_o to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n object_n the_o stand_v out_o of_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n against_o vigilius_n 124._o vigilius_n pag_n 123._o 124._o but_o you_o may_v by_o the_o like_a argument_n prove_v that_o subject_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v their_o prince_n because_o some_o of_o they_o stand_v out_o in_o rebellion_n against_o he_o and_o as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n be_v your_o tell_v we_o fin_n we_o pag_n 123._o fin_n that_o those_o bishop_n condemn_v all_o they_o that_o defend_v the_o three_o chapter_n for_o contrary_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n in_o their_o council_n at_o aquileia_n condemn_v all_o those_o bishop_n and_o their_o council_n at_o constantinople_n and_o have_v more_o right_a to_o do_v it_o than_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n to_o condemn_v they_o for_o they_o do_v it_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n who_o opinion_n they_o follow_v your_o urge_v 123._o urge_v pag._n 123._o the_o persecution_n which_o justinian_n raise_v against_o vigilius_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n make_v whole_o against_o you_o for_o why_o do_v both_o he_o and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o urge_v vigilius_n so_o âuch_o to_o confirm_v their_o decree_n but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o no_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n can_v be_v of_o force_n unless_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a 6._o apostolic_a see_v this_o prove_v above_o chap._n 17._o sect_n 6._o final_o the_o pope_n authority_n ãâã_d effectual_o prove_v out_o of_o this_o council_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o virtue_n of_o vigilius_n his_o confirmation_n it_o have_v obtain_v the_o force_n of_o a_o lawful_a council_n and_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o the_o five_o general_n whereas_o without_o his_o confirmation_n it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n more_o than_o that_o of_o ariminum_n or_o the_o second_o of_o ephesus_n which_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v reject_v and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o eutichius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o though_o he_o prefide_v in_o this_o council_n yet_o acknowledge_v the_o right_n of_o preside_v not_o to_o belong_v to_o himself_o but_o to_o vigilius_n when_o invite_v he_o to_o the_o council_n he_o say_v 1._o say_v ep._n ad_fw-la vigil_n in_o quinta_fw-la syn._n collat._n 1._o our_o desire_n be_v to_o have_v the_o three_o chapter_n examine_v your_o blessedness_n preside_v over_o us._n sect_n iv_o doctor_n mortons_n gloss_n upon_o the_o word_n obedience_n to_o conclude_v your_o discourse_n of_o the_o five_o general_a council_n as_o untrue_o &_o ignorant_o as_o you_o begin_v you_o say_v 124._o say_v pag._n 124._o idle_a and_o vain_a be_v your_o objection_n out_o of_o that_o synod_n from_o one_o word_n obedience_n which_o they_o profess_v to_o the_o catholic_a see_v by_o not_o discern_v between_o a_o logical_a and_o a_o moral_a obedience_n for_o they_o promise_v obedience_n to_o that_o see_v in_o all_o her_o orthodox_n and_o reasonable_a persuasion_n but_o not_o to_o her_o peremptory_a command_n and_o conclusion_n for_o you_o may_v obey_v s._n augustine_n by_o subscribe_v to_o his_o judgement_n without_o submit_v to_o his_o jurisdiction_n so_o you_o where_o first_o you_o ignorant_o make_v this_o profession_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v of_o the_o fiââh_v general_a council_n and_o allege_v bellarmine_n for_o your_o author_n who_o express_o say_v that_o they_o be_v word_n of_o the_o synod_n hold_v under_o menas_n before_o the_o five_o general_a council_n 2._o your_o gloss_n upon_o the_o word_n obedience_n be_v idle_a and_o false_a for_o you_o wrest_v it_o to_o a_o improper_a signification_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o word_n of_o obedience_n and_o command_v may_v be_v take_v improper_o as_o if_o when_o your_o equal_a or_o inferior_a request_n you_o to_o do_v a_o favour_n for_o he_o or_o persuade_v you_o to_o your_o own_o good_a you_o answer_v i_o will_v obey_v your_o command_n understand_v by_o his_o command_n his_o request_n and_o persuasion_n but_o that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v true_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o command_v according_a to_o the_o most_o first_o and_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o the_o great_a bishop_n &_o counsel_n have_v acknowledge_v in_o themselves_o obligation_n to_o obey_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n have_v be_v already_o prove_v 1._o prove_v chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o false_a therefore_o be_v you_o gloss_n that_o this_o council_n acknowledge_v not_o in_o themselves_o obligation_n to_o obey_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n nor_o in_o he_o authority_n to_o command_v but_o only_o to_o persuade_v you_o defend_v a_o ill_a cause_n which_o upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o only_o to_o excuse_v your_o disobedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a enforce_v you_o to_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n to_o a_o improper_a signification_n and_o as_o your_o gloss_n upon_o the_o word_n obedience_n be_v false_a so_o be_v it_o repugnant_a even_o to_o common_a sense_n for_o let_v a_o general_a council_n be_v call_v of_o all_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o the_o world_n let_v they_o condemn_v a_o arius_n a_o eutyches_n or_o a_o pelagius_n if_o your_o gloss_n may_v be_v allow_v any_o of_o these_o heretic_n or_o any_o other_o never_o so_o impious_a may_v refuse_v to_o submit_v himself_o and_o obey_v their_o decree_n say_v he_o will_v obey_v they_o in_o all_o their_o orthodox_n and_o reasonable_a persuasion_n but_o not_o in_o their_o peremptory_a command_n and_o conclusion_n and_o so_o obey_v they_o in_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o what_o heretic_n will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n against_o his_o heresy_n be_v not_o orthodox_n and_o reasonable_a persuasion_n but_o peremptory_a command_n and_o conclusion_n cold_a this_o evasion_n justify_v arius_n his_o disobedience_n or_o excuse_v he_o from_o heresy_n no_o and_o so_o neither_o can_v your_o gloss_n justify_v your_o cause_n or_o satisfy_v any_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o as_o your_o gloss_n be_v false_a so_o be_v your_o deal_n imposterous_a for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n true_o allege_v by_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o who_o you_o cite_v they_o be_v apostolicam_fw-la sedem_fw-la sequimur_fw-la &_o obedimus_fw-la &_o ipsius_fw-la communicatores_fw-la communicatores_fw-la habemus_fw-la &_o condemnatos_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la condemnamus_fw-la we_o follow_v and_o obey_v the_o see_v apostolic_a
2._o whosoever_o shall_v deny_v unto_o he_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n the_o princedom_n of_o care_n and_o power_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o depress_v his_o dignity_n but_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n shall_v drown_v himself_o into_o hell_n your_o syllogism_n then_o be_v vain_a the_o minor_a thereof_o be_v manifest_o false_a that_o the_o african_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o come_v now_o to_o your_o falsify_v and_o falsification_n of_o the_o story_n and_o tenor_n of_o the_o foresay_a question_v epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o two_o especial_o be_v very_o exorbitant_a first_o that_o the_o pope_n denounce_v or_o thunder_v out_o 150._o out_o pag_n 148._o &_o pag._n 150._o excommunication_n against_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n that_o these_o aurelius_n and_o s._n augustine_n &_o all_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n be_v excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o opposition_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o notorious_a falsehood_n you_o seek_v to_o make_v good_a by_o a_o notable_a falsification_n 149._o falsification_n pag._n 149._o tell_v we_o that_o our_o costerus_n and_o turrian_n both_o jesuite_n and_o also_o m._n harding_n do_v great_o magnify_v our_o pope_n for_o discharge_v their_o office_n in_o excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n you_o neither_o cite_v any_o word_n nor_o quote_v any_o place_n of_o turrian_n but_o refer_v we_o in_o your_o margin_n to_o your_o sadeel_n who_o we_o trust_v as_o little_a almost_o as_o we_o do_v yourself_o you_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o the_o jesuite_n costerus_n bene_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifices_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o you_o pervert_v they_o and_o turn_v they_o to_o another_o matter_n and_o purpose_n 159._o purpose_n costerus_n enchirid._n controver_n de_fw-fr summo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la pag._n 159._o costerus_n propose_v your_o protestant_a argument_n the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v bitter_o inveigh_v against_o pope_n celestine_n who_o after_o pope_n zozimus_n challenge_v authority_n over_o the_o african_a church_n and_o admit_v the_o appeal_v of_o clergyman_n from_o their_o bishop_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v the_o objection_n unto_o which_o he_o make_v answer_n in_o the_o word_n by_o you_o cite_v rectè_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifices_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v well_o and_o according_a to_o their_o duty_n and_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v to_o blame_v who_o even_o then_o as_o do_v testify_v boniface_n the_o 2._o be_v incline_v to_o a_o defection_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o their_o own_o great_a loss_n because_o soon_o after_o they_o be_v conquer_v and_o come_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o arian_n wandals_n bless_a augustine_n subscribe_v not_o unto_o those_o bitter_a letter_n for_o he_o do_v ever_o bear_v singular_a veneration_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a see_v thus_o costerus_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v well_o in_o admit_v the_o appeal_v of_o the_o clergyman_n make_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o herein_o he_o do_v discharge_v the_o office_n of_o a_o good_a pastor_n but_o that_o he_o do_v excommunicate_a aurelius_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o do_v discharge_v his_o duty_n this_o costerus_n do_v not_o say_v no_o nor_o that_o the_o african_n be_v schismatical_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n burr_n only_o that_o they_o seem_v even_o then_o to_o think_v upon_o some_o such_o thing_n m._n harding_n in_o like_a manner_n say_v a._n say_v answer_v to_o m._n jewelâs_n challenge_n fol._n 218._o a._n that_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n have_v continue_v in_o schism_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a through_o the_o entisement_n of_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n but_o that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n or_o any_o one_o church_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n this_o m._n harding_n do_v not_o say_v so_o that_o the_o excommunication_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o africa_n by_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o record_v by_o any_o author_n not_o by_o costerus_n not_o by_o harding_n not_o by_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a fiction_n of_o your_o own_o head_n the_o african_n be_v no_o further_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o they_o eloyn_v themselves_o from_o it_o by_o their_o own_o voluntary_o departure_n and_o fault_n but_o they_o do_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o deny_v the_o christian_a faith_n thereof_o nor_o by_o deny_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o but_o only_o dissent_v in_o a_o problematique_a eorum_fw-la problematique_a an_fw-mi expediret_fw-la ea_fw-la potestate_fw-la uti_fw-la &_o omnibus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la dubitacum_fw-la est_fw-la bellarm._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif_n c._n 25._o §._o ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la eorum_fw-la question_n about_o what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o pope_n about_o the_o appeal_v of_o african_a clergyman_n of_o inferior_a degree_n although_o this_o falsehood_n &_o falsification_n may_v seem_v gross_a enough_o yet_o the_o second_o be_v great_a the_o jesuite_n salmeron_n say_v 149._o say_v pag._n 149._o you_o and_o sanders_n do_v confident_o hold_v that_o all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o say_v boniface_n the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v say_v or_o devise_v more_o open_o notorious_o &_o palpable_o false_a than_o this_o you_o say_v in_o the_o word_n that_o present_o follow_v the_o above_o cite_v that_o you_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o we_o stand_v half_a aghast_a very_o so_o it_o be_v we_o stand_v more_o than_o half_a aghast_a not_o that_o there_o be_v different_a opinion_n among_o our_o author_n about_o the_o say_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o but_o that_o protestant_n can_v endure_v that_o such_o notorious_a falsity_n shall_v be_v so_o confident_o utter_v and_o lay_v for_o ground_n and_o principle_n in_o your_o discourse_n to_o iusââly_v their_o revolt_n from_o the_o obedience_n doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o the_o jesuit_n salmeron_n say_v you_o and_o sanders_n do_v confident_o so_o hold_v if_o this_o be_v true_a we_o shall_v remain_v aghast_a at_o their_o madness_n &_o think_v their_o writing_n worthy_a of_o the_o fire_n if_o they_o do_v not_o so_o hold_v if_o they_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a in_o plain_a term_n if_o these_o word_n all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n until_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o which_o you_o allege_v in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n as_o verbal_o they_o be_v supposititious_a and_o forge_a how_o ought_v protestant_n to_o remain_v aghast_a what_o course_n ought_v they_o to_o take_v with_o your_o writing_n sanders_n then_o to_o begin_v with_o he_o do_v not_o say_v all_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o contrary_a in_o these_o very_a word_n 247._o word_n sanderus_n de_fw-fr visibili_fw-la monarch_n pag._n 330._o n._n 247._o non_fw-la ergo_fw-la ut_fw-la somniant_fw-la magdeburgenses_n aut_fw-la potiùs_fw-la calumniantur_fw-la omnes_fw-la africani_n patres_fw-la opposueruât_fw-la se_fw-la pontifici_fw-la romano_n sed_fw-la potiùs_fw-la multi_fw-la cupiebant_fw-la rem_fw-la adipsum_fw-la referri_fw-la in_o the_o controversy_n about_o appellation_n all_o the_o african_a bishop_n do_v not_o oppofe_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o magdeburgian_o dream_n or_o rather_o calumnious_o report_v yea_o rather_o many_o of_o they_o desire_v that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o though_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o primate_n of_o all_o africa_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v somewhat_o cross_a and_o to_o have_v affect_v a_o absolute_a primacy_n in_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o behaviour_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o sign_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o other_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v yea_o that_o aurelius_n himself_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o appeal_v to_o he_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n thus_o sanders_n who_o further_a against_o your_o peremptory_a affirm_v that_o namely_o s._n augustine_n concur_v with_o aurelius_n in_o this_o point_n he_o produce_v the_o word_n of_o bishop_n faustinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n unto_o aurelius_n request_v he_o that_o about_o appeal_v make_v by_o clergyman_n of_o inferior_a degree_n unto_o bishop_n his_o holiness_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o write_v to_o venerable_a pope_n boniface_n remit_v the_o matter_n to_o his_o deliberation_n and_o conclusion_n ficut_fw-la sanctus_n augustinus_n statuere_fw-la dignatus_fw-la est_fw-la as_o holy_a augustine_n have_v be_v please_v to_o determine_v by_o his_o suffrage_n by_o which_o
word_n say_v sanders_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v have_v the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o order_v as_o he_o shall_v think_v best_a so_o that_o whereas_o you_o cite_v sanders_n say_v all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o true_a word_n import_v the_o direct_a contradictory_n non_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la africani_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n do_v not_o oppose_v the_o roman_a bishop_n you_o also_o allege_v he_o de_fw-fr visibili_fw-la monarch_n pag._n 368._o n._n 411._o where_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o your_o purpose_n but_o only_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o eulalia_n of_o carthage_n his_o recantation_n we_o anathematise_v all_o those_o that_o proud_o lift_v up_o their_o neck_n against_o the_o holy_a roman_a and_o apostolical_a church_n from_o these_o word_n can_v you_o gather_v your_o dismal_a assertion_n that_o all_z the_o african_a bishop_n from_o the_o day_n of_o cyprian_a until_o boniface_n the_o second_o that_o be_v for_o three_o hundred_o year_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o sever_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o jesuite_n salmeron_n say_v no_o more_o then_o canonem_fw-la then_o salmeron_n tom_n 12._o tract_n 68_o §._o ad_fw-la canonem_fw-la that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n the_o african_a bishop_n begin_v to_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n innocent_a and_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n they_o be_v bitter_a and_o displease_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v so_o nor_o that_o they_o withdraw_v their_o communion_n and_o obedience_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n yea_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n though_o he_o and_o fourscore_o african_a bishop_n be_v displease_v with_o pope_n stephen_n because_o he_o do_v strong_o and_o constant_o oppose_v their_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o anabaptism_n yet_o they_o never_o proceed_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n contrariwise_o the_o very_a same_o fourscore_o bishop_n who_o have_v make_v a_o decree_n for_o anabaptism_n meet_v together_o again_o as_o s._n hierome_n do_v testify_v decretum_fw-la testify_v hieron_n dialog_n count_v lucifer_n illi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la rebaptizandos_fw-la haereticos_fw-la cum_fw-la cypriano_n statuerunt_fw-la ad_fw-la antiquam_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la reuâluti_fw-la nowm_fw-la emisâre_fw-la decretum_fw-la and_o repeal_v their_o decree_n which_o may_v have_v cause_v their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o false_a be_v it_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n until_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o even_o those_o very_a bishop_n of_o those_o day_n be_v not_o sever_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o grant_v it_o be_v true_a no_o more_o be_v prove_v then_o that_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n superbirâ_n cepit_fw-la be_v somewhat_o arrogant_a and_o proud_a against_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o eulalius_n of_o carthage_n do_v against_o the_o example_n of_o his_o other_o predecessor_n imitate_v aurelius_n therein_o as_o he_o do_v testify_v say_v in_o the_o say_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n that_o he_o feel_v himself_o peccatis_fw-la aurelij_fw-la praegravatum_fw-la overburdened_n with_o the_o sin_n of_o aurelius_n but_o that_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o africa_n namely_o those_o many_o martyr_n that_o suffer_v persecution_n under_o the_o arian_n wandalls_n be_v taint_v with_o this_o bitterness_n of_o distaste_n and_o schismatical_a dis-union_n against_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v a_o fable_n by_o yourself_o new_o coin_a and_o vent_v abroad_o now_o to_o the_o three_o point_n propose_v although_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n do_v not_o justify_v your_o slander_n against_o all_o the_o bishop_n &_o martyr_n of_o africa_n that_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o argument_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o evince_v that_o the_o same_o be_v counterfeit_a the_o relation_n thereof_o be_v incoherent_a first_o you_o etc._n you_o pag._n 148._o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o about_o the_o year_n 606._o the_o same_o pope_n complain_v etc._n etc._n say_v that_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n happen_v about_o the_o year_n 606._o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o these_o thing_n hang_v not_o together_o and_o consequent_o be_v false_a for_o boniface_n the_o second_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 531._o that_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o year_n 606._o second_o the_o say_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o affirm_v that_o eulalius_n his_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v perform_v in_o the_o day_n of_o justine_n the_o emperor_n &_o destinavimus_fw-la &_o justini_n elementissimi_fw-la principis_fw-la orientis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la ad_fw-la voâ_n destinavimus_fw-la that_o this_o emperor_n write_v letter_n to_o the_o say_v boniface_n about_o it_o now_o justine_n the_o emperor_n be_v dead_a three_o or_o four_o year_n before_o romiface_n the_o second_o be_v choose_v pope_n three_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n be_v write_v to_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o day_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v not_o name_v eulalius_n but_o timothaeus_n a_o heretic_n and_o a_o adversary_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o see_v this_o difficulty_n and_o to_o avoid_v it_o fear_v not_o to_o do_v against_o the_o command_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n joan._n ghost_n vide_fw-la titulum_fw-la psalmi_n 58._o &_o augu._n tract_n 117._o in_o joan._n ne_fw-fr corrumpaes_fw-fr tituli_fw-la inscriptionem_fw-la for_o the_o title_n of_o that_o epistle_n in_o surius_n be_v epistola_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la bonifacij_fw-la ad_fw-la eulalium_fw-la alexandrinum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la x_o episcopum_fw-la pag._n 248._o in_o mark_fw-mi at_o x_o you_o change_v it_o and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v epistola_fw-la bonifacij_fw-la ad_fw-la alexandrum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o bishop_n alexander_n nor_o do_v you_o tell_v we_o of_o what_o church_n or_o see_v this_o your_o alexander_n be_v bishop_n four_o in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o gilimer_n the_o arian_n wandal_n be_v king_n of_o africa_n during_o who_o reign_n there_o be_v no_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o carthage_n seqq_fw-la carthage_n see_v baron_n anno_fw-la 620._o &_o seqq_fw-la nor_o in_o any_o church_n of_o africa_n but_o only_a arian_n final_o your_o apostata-bishop_n of_o spalleto_n antonius_n de_fw-fr dominis_n in_o his_o 34._o his_o de_fw-fr repub._n eccles._n lib._n 4._o c._n 8._o n._n 34._o london-writing_n which_o he_o publish_v under_o your_o nose_n &_o with_o your_o so_o great_a approbation_n and_o applause_n do_v so_o lay_v about_o he_o against_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n that_o you_o who_o be_v so_o stiff_a a_o defender_n thereof_o have_v best_a to_o stand_v aside_o for_o fear_v of_o knock_n in_o the_o controversy_n about_o appellation_n say_v he_o abrupta_fw-la he_o communio_fw-la inter_fw-la africam_fw-la &_o romam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la abrupta_fw-la the_o communion_n between_o africa_n and_o rome_n be_v never_o break_v as_o baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la do_v prove_v very_o well_o the_o reconciliation_n or_o recantation_n make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n unto_o boniface_n the_o second_o which_o some_o one_o have_v feign_a impostura_fw-la feign_a mara_fw-mi est_fw-la impostura_fw-la be_v a_o mere_a imposture_n as_o the_o say_a author_n demonstrate_v thus_o he_o may_v you_o not_o number_v this_o man_n among_o the_o child_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n and_o angry_a fellow_n who_o do_v so_o peremptory_o aver_v the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n and_o a_o grand_a imposture_n with_o great_a reason_n than_o you_o have_v do_v bellarmine_n for_o only_o say_v i_o suspect_v it_o be_v counterfeit_a in_o fine_a these_o argument_n abundant_o show_v that_o this_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n may_v be_v question_v and_o reject_v and_o yet_o all_o the_o other_o epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n set_v down_o in_o the_o body_n of_o our_o counsel_n cell_n subsist_v firm_a against_o which_o the_o like_a implicancy_n and_o incoherency_n can_v be_v urge_v as_o for_o bishop_n lindan_n he_o speak_v against_o they_o who_o discard_v this_o epistle_n voluntary_o and_o without_o evident_a proof_n say_v that_o they_o may_v aswell_o infringe_v the_o credit_n of_o any_o ancient_a history_n which_o his_o inference_n be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o they_o who_o refuse_v it_o as_o counterfeit_v not_o voluntary_o but_o constrain_v by_o the_o pregnant_a incompossibility_n thereof_o with_o other_o know_a undeniable_a truth_n chap._n xxviii_o whether_o the_o britan_n
famous_a bishop_n of_o luca_n renown_v for_o his_o learning_n and_o sanctity_n and_o illustrious_a for_o miracle_n in_o his_o life_n and_o after_o his_o death_n write_v against_o guibertus_n the_o antipope_n set_v up_o by_o the_o wicked_a emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o and_o among_o other_o praise_n give_v he_o the_o same_o that_o s._n cyprian_n in_o like_a occasion_n give_v to_o the_o holy_a pope_n cornelius_n i_o may_v affirm_v say_v he_o of_o gregory_n our_o father_n that_o which_o bless_v cyprian_n write_v of_o cornelius_n he_o be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o almost_o all_o nay_o to_o speak_v more_o true_o of_o all_o the_o clergy_n without_o exception_n by_o the_o verdict_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v present_a by_o the_o college_n of_o ancient_a priest_n and_o good_a man_n none_o other_o be_v create_v before_o he_o when_o the_o place_n of_o alexander_n that_o be_v when_o the_o place_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a chair_n be_v vacant_a and_o how_o true_a this_o testimony_n of_o s._n anselme_n be_v appear_v by_o the_o formal_a word_n of_o his_o election_n set_v down_o by_o platina_n 7._o platina_n in_o vita_fw-la gregorij_fw-la 7._o wherein_o cardinal_n bishop_n abbot_n priest_n all_o degree_n of_o ecclesiastical_a man_n and_o laic_n make_v choice_n of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o man_n modest_a sober_a chaste_a of_o singular_a learning_n of_o great_a piety_n wisdom_n justice_n constancy_n and_o religion_n how_o think_v you_o doctor_n morton_n be_v this_o man_n likely_a to_o sport_v himself_o with_o toss_v the_o crown_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n from_o their_o head_n you_o plead_v 174._o plead_v pag._n 174._o that_o his_o proceed_n against_o henry_n be_v not_o for_o any_o note_n of_o heresy_n but_o only_o for_o not_o subiect_v himself_o to_o the_o pope_n dignity_n and_o dominion_n read_v the_o testimony_n of_o grave_a writer_n almost_o 40._o in_o number_n 1087._o number_n apud_fw-la bellar._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 13._o &_o count_v barcla_n ãâã_d 9_o &_o genebrard_n in_o chronico_fw-la a_o 1087._o many_o of_o which_o live_v in_o his_o time_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o henry_n be_v censure_v as_o a_o archpirate_n a_o archheretic_n a_o apostata_fw-la a_o persecutor_n of_o soul_n more_o than_o body_n and_o for_o his_o behaviour_n and_o manner_n that_o he_o contemn_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n oppress_v the_o noble_n exalt_v base_a fellow_n and_o marry_v to_o they_o the_o daughter_n of_o noble_a man_n at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o not_o content_v himself_o with_o ordinary_a sin_n be_v invent_v and_o commit_v other_o never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o the_o world_n and_o to_o many_o man_n altogether_o incredible_a and_o with_o these_o author_n caluin_n agree_v say_v 13._o say_v l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 11._o sect_n 13._o that_o he_o be_v light_a temerarious_a of_o no_o judgement_n of_o great_a boldness_n of_o dissolute_a life_n and_o that_o he_o have_v all_o the_o bishopricke_n he_o may_v have_v add_v and_o all_o the_o archbishopricke_n and_o abbacy_n of_o germany_n in_o his_o court_n partly_o expose_v to_o sale_n partly_o to_o prey_n and_o rapine_n final_o so_o abominable_a be_v his_o lust_n so_o execrable_a his_o simony_n so_o great_a his_o oppression_n of_o germany_n his_o life_n in_o all_o respect_n so_o flagitious_a and_o his_o person_n for_o that_o cause_n so_o hateful_a that_o as_o vrspergensis_n report_v 1106._o report_v chron._n a_o 1106._o when_o he_o die_v there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o find_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o sorrow_a for_o his_o death_n nay_o that_o do_v not_o exceed_o rejoice_v thereat_o even_o as_o israel_n rejoice_v at_o the_o drow_n of_o pharaoh_n in_o the_o red_a sea_n or_o as_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n exult_v in_o the_o triumph_n of_o their_o emperor_n much_o more_o in_o this_o kind_n be_v report_v by_o the_o aforecited_a author_n to_o which_o marianus_n scotus_n a_o historian_n of_o that_o time_n add_v 1075._o add_v chron._n a_o 1075._o that_o the_o catholic_n which_o live_v then_o in_o the_o church_n see_v and_o hear_v the_o horrible_a and_o unheard-of_a crime_n of_o henry_n inflame_v with_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n for_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o prophet_n helias_n send_v messenger_n to_o alexander_n then_o govern_v the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o complain_v express_v their_o grief_n with_o sigh_n and_o lamentation_n both_o by_o letter_n and_o word_n whereupon_o say_v william_n b._n of_o 13._o of_o l._n 1._o debello_fw-la sacro_fw-la c._n 13._o tyre_n gregory_n his_o successor_n before_o he_o proceed_v against_o he_o send_v thrice_o unto_o he_o and_o with_o the_o love_n and_o affection_n of_o a_o father_n admonish_v he_o seek_v to_o reclaim_v he_o &_o win_v he_o to_o his_o own_o good_a but_o prevail_v not_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o impartial_a reader_n whether_o you_o have_v not_o slander_v and_o wrong_a gregory_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n say_v that_o he_o sport_v himself_o with_o toss_v the_o emperor_n crown_n from_o his_o head_n and_o this_o not_o far_o any_o note_n of_o heresy_n but_o only_o for_o not_o subiect_v himself_o to_o his_o dignity_n and_o dominion_n beware_v in_o time_n lest_o you_o which_o possess_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v not_o punish_v by_o god_n as_o william_n b._n of_o maestricht_n be_v who_o say_v lambertus_n scafnaburgensis_n germ._n scafnaburgensis_n hist._n rârum_n germ._n be_v sudden_o surprise_v with_o a_o most_o grievous_a sickness_n cry_v outwith_o miserable_a shriek_n before_o all_o that_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n he_o have_v lose_v both_o this_o present_a and_o eternal_a life_n for_o have_v take_v part_n with_o the_o emperor_n in_o his_o sacrilegious_a enterprise_n and_o in_o hope_n of_o gain_v his_o favour_n witting_o reproach_v the_o most_o holy_a b._n of_o rome_n a_o man_n of_o apostolical_a virtue_n and_o innocency_n not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v the_o miraculous_a punishment_n of_o imbrico_n b._n of_o ausburg_n for_o the_o same_o fault_n relate_v by_o bartholdus_n chron._n bartholdus_n in_o chron._n a_o historian_n of_o the_o same_o time_n and_o finaliy_v our_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o canterbuty_n s._n anselme_n if_o he_o be_v live_v will_v say_v to_o you_o as_o he_o do_v to_o wâlramus_n that_o he_o will_v refrain_v from_o salute_v you_o for_o take_v part_n with_o henry_n the_o emperor_n against_o gregory_n that_o be_v no_o less_o a_o crime_n then_o to_o take_v part_n with_o the_o successor_n of_o nero_n and_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la against_o the_o successor_n and_o vicar_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n i_o have_v dwell_v a_o while_n in_o this_o history_n of_o gregory_n because_o of_o all_o the_o four_o pope_n against_o who_o you_o here_o except_v you_o rail_v most_o intemperate_o against_o he_o for_o thereby_o the_o reader_n may_v understand_v that_o as_o you_o slander_v he_o so_o you_o do_v also_o the_o rest_n for_o how_o excellent_a and_o godly_a a_o prelate_n zacharias_n be_v you_o have_v hear_v and_o of_o the_o other_o two_o historian_n report_v no_o less_o of_o innocentius_n they_o write_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a pope_n for_o good_a life_n and_o rate_n learning_n in_o many_o kind_n that_o for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n hold_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n to_o which_o his_o many_o work_n full_a of_o singular_a erudition_n piety_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n give_v witness_n by_o his_o mean_n livonia_n receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n he_o build_v repair_v &_o adorn_v many_o church_n with_o rich_a gift_n he_o sounded_z and_o endow_v with_o great_a revenue_n that_o famous_a hospital_n of_o sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la in_o saxia_fw-la in_o which_o so_o many_o disease_a and_o sick_a person_n even_o to_o this_o day_n be_v cure_v and_o so_o many_o poor_a child_n and_o orphan_n breed_v up_o and_o mantain_v he_o confirm_v the_o religious_a order_n of_o s._n dominick_n of_o s._n francis_n of_o the_o heremit_v of_o s._n augustine_n of_o the_o carmelites_n of_o the_o croch_v friar_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o captive_n and_o other_o which_o have_v yield_v innumerable_a man_n that_o with_o their_o sanctity_n and_o learning_n have_v be_v a_o most_o singular_a ornament_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o who_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v in_o debt_a for_o their_o great_a labour_n undertake_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n reduction_n of_o heretic_n reformation_n of_o manner_n among_o catholic_n and_o for_o the_o excellent_a monument_n of_o their_o work_n in_o all_o faculty_n of_o learning_n final_o so_o great_a be_v the_o fame_n of_o innocentius_n his_o sanctity_n and_o excellent_a government_n that_o among_o other_o author_n blondus_n write_v 297._o write_v dâcad_n 2._o l._n 7._o
and_o untruth_n you_o break_v forth_o into_o such_o intemperate_a rail_n 28._o rail_n impost_n pag._n 177._o ser_n pag._n 28._o that_o i_o disdain_v to_o pass_v it_o under_o my_o pen_n and_o i_o suppose_v that_o every_o honest_a mind_a reader_n though_o never_o so_o zealous_a a_o protestant_n will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o see_v such_o venom_n together_o with_o so_o shameful_a untruth_n to_o fall_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o man_n of_o your_o year_n especial_o since_o what_o here_o you_o write_v have_v no_o other_o ground_n but_o your_o unconscionable_a slander_v of_o vrban_a the_o second_o who_o you_o nickname_n turbane_n â9_n turbane_n serm._n pag._n â9_n as_o if_o by_o a_o rescript_n of_o he_o he_o have_v authorize_v assassin_n to_o invade_v &_o kill_v excommunicate_v person_n at_o their_o pleasure_n the_o case_n be_v this_o certain_a lewd_a and_o dissolute_a clergy_n man_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o church_n take_v arm_n &_o be_v âlaine_v in_o the_o field_n in_o a_o battle_n fight_v between_o the_o sacrilegious_a emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o and_o eghert_n marquis_n of_o saxony_n vrban_n be_v consult_v declare_v the_o soldier_n that_o kill_v they_o not_o to_o be_v murderer_n nor_o to_o have_v incur_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n pronounce_v against_o such_o as_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o clergyman_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o kill_v excommunicate_v person_n be_v they_o priest_n or_o other_o ecclesiastic_n in_o a_o just_a war_n and_o when_o they_o invade_v our_o life_n but_o your_o inference_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o kill_v excommunicate_v person_n by_o assassin_n or_o any_o other_o way_n by_o his_o own_o private_a authority_n be_v not_o allow_v by_o vrban_n nor_o assert_v by_o any_o catholic_a divine_a but_o a_o imposture_n of_o you_o to_o enrage_v the_o mind_n of_o protestant_n against_o catholic_n yea_o to_o show_v your_o imposture_n innocentius_n the_o four_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n assemble_v in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o lion_n have_v ordain_v excommunication_n and_o other_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n for_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o that_o shall_v murder_v or_o go_v about_o to_o murder_v any_o one_o by_o assassin_n the_o decree_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o i_o shall_v set_v down_o to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v your_o deal_n and_o learn_v never_o to_o credit_v your_o word_n hereafter_o whereas_o say_v innocentius_n 4._o innocentius_n sext._n decret_a de_fw-fr homicide_n do_fw-mi 4._o they_o that_o with_o such_o horrible_a inhumanity_n and_o barbarous_a cruelty_n so_o thirst_v after_o the_o death_n of_o other_o as_o that_o they_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v slay_v by_o assassin_n procure_v not_o only_o the_o death_n of_o their_o body_n but_o also_o of_o their_o soul_n if_o they_o be_v not_o fence_a with_o abundant_a grace_n of_o god_n as_o with_o spiritual_a armour_n etc._n etc._n we_o be_v desirous_a to_o prevent_v so_o great_a a_o danger_n of_o soul_n and_o to_o beat_v down_o such_o impious_a presumption_n with_o the_o sword_n of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n to_o the_o end_n that_o fear_v of_o punishment_n may_v be_v a_o stop_n to_o so_o great_a audaciousness_n ordain_v with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n that_o whatsoever_o prince_n prelate_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a or_o secular_a person_n shall_v cause_v or_o command_v any_o christian_n to_o be_v kill_v by_o assassin_n although_o death_n follow_v not_o thereby_o or_o that_o shall_v receive_v defend_v or_o conceal_v they_o do_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la incur_fw-la the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n from_o his_o dignity_n honour_n order_n office_n or_o benefice_n which_o therefore_o may_v free_o be_v confer_v a_o other_o by_o they_o to_o who_o the_o gift_n of_o these_o thing_n belong_v and_o let_v he_o with_o all_o his_o worldly_a good_n as_o a_o enemy_n to_o christian_a religion_n be_v cast_v out_o for_o ever_o from_o among_o christian_a people_n and_o if_o sufficient_a proof_n he_o make_v against_o any_o one_o that_o he_o have_v commit_v so_o execrable_a a_o wickedness_n let_v no_o other_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n deposition_n or_o dissidation_n against_o he_o be_v require_v this_o be_v the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n assemble_v in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o lion_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o obscure_a thing_n but_o a_o canon_n publish_v and_o insert_v in_o form_n of_o a_o law_n into_o the_o decretal_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n go_v now_o and_o rail_v against_o the_o pope_n for_o quit_v the_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v kill_v other_o by_o assassin_n tell_v we_o can_v the_o church_n possible_o devise_v any_o punishment_n more_o grievous_a for_o any_o malefactor_n they_o these_o which_o she_o inflict_v on_o all_o they_o that_o shall_v either_o kill_v or_o endeavour_n to_o kill_v other_o by_o assassin_n although_o the_o effect_n follow_v not_o do_v she_o grant_v any_o exemption_n from_o these_o punishment_n to_o they_o that_o shall_v kill_v excommunicate_v person_n be_v not_o the_o decree_n general_a and_o in_o favour_n of_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n aswell_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n as_o catholic_n and_o as_o well_o excommunicate_a as_o not_o excommunicate_a let_v the_o reader_n then_o judge_v of_o your_o conscience_n what_o censure_v you_o deserve_v for_o slander_v vrban_a pope_n as_o allow_v the_o murder_n of_o excommunicate_v person_n by_o assasine_n sect_n v._o doctor_n morton_n object_v the_o bull_n of_o maunday_n thursday_n to_o make_v good_a your_o slanderous_a doctrine_n of_o our_o allow_v excommunicate_v person_n to_o be_v murder_v by_o assassin_n you_o say_v 30._o say_v impost_n pag._n 177._o sermon_n pag._n 30._o go_v you_o now_o and_o complain_v that_o you_o be_v unjust_o persecute_v or_o banish_v by_o protestant_n out_o of_o several_a kingdom_n when_o as_o they_o be_v all_o yearly_a excommunicate_a at_o rome_n for_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n by_o the_o bull_n of_o maundy_n thursday_n &_o consequent_o make_v obnoxious_a unto_o the_o blind_a devotion_n of_o every_o romish_a bloody_a assassin_n who_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o he_o shall_v merit_v of_o god_n by_o the_o slay_v of_o those_o suppose_a schismatic_n two_o thing_n may_v here_o be_v question_v the_o one_o whether_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v the_o other_o whether_o protestant_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o number_n of_o heretic_n excommunicate_v in_o the_o bull_n of_o maundy_n thursday_n what_o your_o opinion_n be_v concern_v the_o former_a i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o know_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o be_v to_o excommunicate_a heretic_n why_o else_o do_v she_o in_o her_o primitive_a time_n excommunicate_v the_o arian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o eunomian_o in_o the_o first_o of_o constantinople_n the_o nestorian_n in_o that_o of_o ephesus_n the_o eutychian_o in_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o in_o other_o counsel_n again_o i_o know_v that_o the_o church_n have_v learn_v this_o from_o christ_n command_v 18.18_o command_v math._n 18.18_o that_o he_o who_o be_v thrice_o warn_v will_v not_o bear_v the_o church_n be_v to_o we_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n i_o know_v that_o s._n paul_n have_v say_v 3.10_o say_v tit._n 3.10_o avoid_v a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n and_o again_o 6.14_o again_o 2._o cor._n 6.14_o what_o participation_n have_v justice_n with_o iniquity_n or_o what_o society_n be_v there_o between_o light_n and_o darkness_n and_o what_o agreement_n with_o christ_n and_o beliall_a or_o what_o part_n have_v the_o faithful_a with_o the_o infidel_n i_o know_v that_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o a_o heretic_n say_v 10._o say_v ep._n 2._o vers_fw-la 10._o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o you_o and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o the_o house_n nor_o say_v unto_o he_o god_n save_v you_o for_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o god_n save_v you_o communicate_v with_o his_o wicked_a work_n wherefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o excommunicate_v heretic_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n have_v command_v and_o what_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o counsel_n have_v teach_v she_o to_o do_v but_o then_o the_o second_o question_n be_v who_o be_v heretic_n and_o who_o not_o s._n augustine_n 1._o augustine_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 1._o distinguish_v between_o a_o heretic_n and_o one_o that_o believe_v heretic_n a_o heretic_n he_o define_v 51._o define_v de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la l._n 18._o c._n 51._o to_o be_v one_o that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a profess_v obstinate_o erroneous_a doctrine_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v conceive_v but_o that_o this_o definition_n adequate_o agree_v to_o
1._o &_o author_n vitæ_fw-la eius_fw-la apud_fw-la sur._n 5._o junij_fw-la return_v into_o germany_n &_o gregory_n send_v he_o the_o pal_z confer_v on_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archbishop_n bonifac_o archbishop_n greg._n 3._o ep_v 2._o add_v bonifac_o and_o before_o he_o s_n gregory_n the_o great_a 8._o great_a l._n 4._o ep._n 8._o write_v to_o john_n bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n the_o relation_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o fellow-bishop_n of_o illyria_n have_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o thou_o be_v call_v to_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n by_o the_o agree_a consent_n of_o dall_a the_o council_n and_o by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a prince_n mauritius_n the_o emperor_n whereunto_o we_o also_o give_v our_o consent_n etc._n etc._n and_o send_v thou_o the_o pall_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o decree_n by_o a_o reiterated_a innovation_n that_o thou_o exercise_v the_o vicarship_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o before_o he_o celestine_n pope_n send_v the_o pal_z to_o cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n 34._o alexandria_n balsam_n in_o nomocan_n phot._n tit_n 3._o c._n 1._o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 34._o make_v he_o his_o vicar_n with_o full_a power_n to_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o nestorius_n and_o again_o before_o he_o marcus_z pope_n grant_v the_o pal_z to_o the_o b._n of_o ostia_n marco_n ostia_n vit._n rom._n pontif._n in_o marco_n confirm_v to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n the_o authority_n of_o consecrate_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n all_o this_o show_v that_o the_o pal_z which_o the_o pope_n send_v to_o archbishop_n be_v not_o only_o a_o expression_n of_o his_o assent_n to_o their_o election_n and_o institution_n but_o a_o grant_n of_o most_o ample_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o require_v from_o he_o by_o ask_v the_o pal_z and_o receive_v from_o he_o together_o with_o the_o pal._n and_o moreover_o that_o their_o letter_n to_o he_o be_v not_o only_o to_o profess_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o to_o acknowledge_v their_o subjection_n and_o to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o he_o which_o promise_n be_v likewise_o make_v by_o all_o bishop_n at_o their_o return_n from_o schism_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n of_o oath_n which_o hormisdas_n pope_n 517._o pope_n apud_fw-la baron_n anno_o 517._o s._n gregory_n 30._o gregory_n l._n 10._o ep._n 30._o and_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n 200._o council_n bin._n to_o 3._o pag._n 923._o canus_n l._n 6._o c._n 6._o pag._n 200._o prescribe_v to_o be_v take_v by_o they_o as_o also_o by_o the_o profession_n which_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n hormisd_v constantinople_n ep._n add_v hormisd_v make_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n and_o final_o the_o ancient_a custom_n which_o sophronius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n pap._n jerusalem_n ep._n ad_fw-la honor._n pap._n call_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v that_o when_o bishop_n be_v first_o institute_v they_o shall_v send_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o he_o approve_v do_v thereby_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o bishoprike_n this_o custom_n say_v sophronius_n we_o follow_v write_v unto_o you_o who_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v give_v testimony_n of_o what_o faith_n we_o hold_v we_o write_v i_o say_v to_o you_o who_o have_v knowledge_n not_o only_o to_o discern_v true_a doctrine_n from_o false_a but_o be_v able_a to_o supply_v whatsoever_o be_v want_v sect_n ii_o a_o shift_n of_o doctor_n morton_n reject_v your_o second_o answer_n be_v 288._o be_v pag._n 288._o that_o as_o the_o send_n of_o the_o pall_n to_o archbishop_n be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n assent_n to_o their_o institution_n so_o his_o depose_n of_o other_o bishop_n without_o the_o roman_a diece_n be_v but_o a_o expression_n to_o other_o that_o he_o think_v they_o just_o depose_v &_o that_o his_o power_n in_o restitution_n of_o other_o that_o have_v be_v depose_v be_v the_o like_a manifestation_n of_o his_o consent_n to_o have_v such_o and_o such_o restore_v even_o as_o other_o patriarch_n often_o do_v these_o be_v word_n but_o not_o a_o answer_n for_o any_o inferior_a as_o a_o suffragan_n bishop_n or_o a_o lay_v man_n may_v express_v his_o opinion_n or_o his_o assent_n that_o his_o metropolitan_a be_v to_o be_v depose_v or_o if_o he_o be_v already_o depose_v that_o he_o be_v just_o depose_v and_o yet_o nether_a depose_v he_o nor_o any_o way_n concur_v to_o his_o deposition_n but_o leave_v he_o in_o the_o state_n he_o find_v he_o for_o deposition_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n or_o of_o a_o temporal_a officer_n be_v iuridicall_a sentence_n whereby_o a_o superior_a actual_o exercise_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o real_o deprive_v his_o inferior_a of_o a_o dignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v possess_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o none_o but_o by_o he_o that_o have_v power_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o condemn_v his_o inferior_a and_o so_o likewise_o the_o restitution_n of_o a_o bishop_n to_o his_o seat_n be_v a_o operative_a act_n of_o power_n whereby_o the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n pronounce_v against_o he_o be_v reverse_a and_o annul_v which_o therefore_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o none_o but_o by_o one_o that_o be_v superior_a in_o power_n as_o well_o to_o the_o bishop_n depose_v as_o to_o the_o superior_a that_o depose_v he_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n request_v the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n precedent_n of_o the_o council_n 3._o council_n act._n 3._o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o they_o according_o perform_v depose_v he_o in_o leo_n name_n from_o his_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o from_o all_o sacerdotal_a function_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n be_v full_a of_o example_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n sect_n iii_o the_o popas_n power_n of_o institute_v and_o confirm_v bishop_n prove_v by_o example_n your_o three_o answer_n be_v 288._o be_v pag._n 288._o you_o produce_v no_o one_o example_n wherein_o it_o can_v appear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v either_o institute_n confirm_v depose_v or_o restore_v any_o bishop_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n alone_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o council_n this_o answer_n be_v a_o shift_n vain_a as_o the_o former_a be_v and_o withal_o a_o notorious_a untruth_n a_o shift_n for_o when_o his_o majesty_n make_v a_o law_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o parliament_n or_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n a_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n with_o a_o council_n of_o his_o suffragans_fw-la be_v it_o not_o sophistry_n to_o argue_v from_o thence_o that_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n in_o his_o dominion_n or_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v not_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o suffragans_fw-la no_o less_o than_o it_o be_v to_o argue_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o bishop_n because_o he_o depose_v or_o restore_v they_o not_o without_o a_o council_n for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o necessaty_n that_o a_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n or_o a_o archbishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n exercise_v all_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n alone_o without_o the_o advice_n or_o help_v of_o their_o subject_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n institute_v depose_v or_o restore_v bishop_n alone_z without_o the_o advice_n and_o help_v of_o a_o council_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o when_o counsel_n have_v proceed_v to_o the_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n they_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o last_o desinitue_a sentence_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n profess_v themselves_o to_o depose_v nestorius_n by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n celestine_n 1._o celestine_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o and_o in_o reserve_v to_o he_o the_o last_o sentence_n against_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 2._o antioch_n see_v ibid._n sect_n 2._o and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v to_o depose_v dioscorus_n they_o beseech_v the_o pope_n legate_n as_o represent_v his_o person_n that_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o judge_n of_o all_o bishop_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o he_o which_o the_o legate_n perform_v 2._o perform_v see_v above_o chap._n 19_o sect_n 2._o and_o when_o they_o admit_v theodoret_n that_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o enter_v and_o take_v his_o place_n among_o the_o bishop_n they_o do_v it_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n lee_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n ibid._n bishopric_n see_v above_o ibid._n and_o as_o this_o your_o three_o answer_n be_v a_o shift_n so_o it_o be_v a_o untruth_n
out_o that_o of_o flavianus_n be_v not_o because_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a bellarmine_n insi_v on_o but_o because_o in_o that_o you_o find_v something_o to_o quarrel_v at_o which_o you_o find_v not_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o upon_o examination_n the_o evidence_n of_o this_o very_a example_n single_v out_o by_o yourself_o will_v show_v how_o unanswearable_a the_o rest_n be_v the_o ease_n be_v this_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v in_o schism_n two_o bishop_n paulinus_n and_o meletius_n pretend_v right_a to_o that_o patriarchall_a seat_n and_o some_o adhere_n to_o the_o one_o some_o to_o the_o other_o not_o without_o danger_n of_o a_o great_a tumult_n they_o come_v to_o agreement_n 3._o agreement_n socrat._v l._n 5._o c._n 5._o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 3._o that_o all_o such_o ecclesiastic_n as_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o govern_v that_o church_n or_o be_v in_o expectation_n thereof_o which_o be_v six_o in_o number_n shall_v bind_v themselves_o by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n not_o to_o admit_v of_o that_o bishopric_n so_o long_o as_o either_o paulinus_n or_o meletius_n live_v and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o either_o of_o they_o to_o let_v the_o superuiver_n peaceable_o enjoy_v that_o seat_n alone_o meletius_n be_v dead_a the_o antiochian_o contrary_a to_o their_o oath_n advance_v flavianus_n to_o the_o bishopric_n in_o opposition_n to_o paulinus_n and_o he_o contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n admit_v thereof_o at_o which_o damasus_n pope_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n be_v great_o offend_v 11._o offend_v sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o &_o not_o without_o cause_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o new_a schism_n it_o cause_v not_o only_o in_o that_o church_n and_o in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o east_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o agreement_n make_v by_o oath_n and_o a_o great_a wrong_n to_o paulinus_n who_o be_v very_o old_a and_o a_o personage_n of_o so_o great_a veneration_n for_o his_o sanctity_n and_o merit_n that_o valens_n a_o heretical_a emperor_n drive_v many_o catholic_a bishop_n from_o their_o church_n in_o to_o banishment_n never_o offer_v to_o touch_v he_o 2._o he_o s._n hieron_n bp._n 61._o add_v pamach_n socrat._v l._n 4._o c._n 2._o wherefore_o damasus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n write_v communicatory_a letter_n to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o antioch_n but_o abstayn_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o flavianus_n and_o excommunicate_v diodorus_n and_o acacius_n that_o have_v ordain_v he_o 11._o he_o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o and_o whereas_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o nectarius_n have_v confirm_v flavianus_n they_o the_o western_a bishop_n annul_v that_o confirmation_n and_o by_o their_o letter_n accompany_v with_o other_o of_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n use_v also_o therein_o the_o help_n of_o theodosius_n who_o write_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n they_o command_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n 9_o rome_n s._n hiero._n ep._n 27._o ad_fw-la eustoch_n theod._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 8._o fin_n etc._n etc._n 9_o &_o put_v the_o election_n of_o flavianus_n again_o in_o trial_n at_o a_o general_a council_n assemble_v there_o give_v withal_o to_o both_o party_n assignation_n to_o appear_v flavianus_n distrust_v the_o equity_n of_o his_o cause_n appear_v not_o 23._o not_o theod._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 23._o but_o have_v recourse_n to_o excuse_n and_o to_o the_o emperor_n but_o paulinus_n obey_v transport_v himself_o to_o rome_n in_o company_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o renown_a personage_n of_o the_o east_n whereof_o s._n hierome_n speak_v say_v princip_n say_v ep._n 16._o ad_fw-la princip_n the_o ecclesiastical_a necessity_n draw_v i_o to_o rome_n with_o the_o holy_a bishop_n paulinus_n and_o epiphanius_n whereof_o the_o one_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n in_o syria_n and_o the_o other_o the_o church_n of_o salamina_n in_o cyprus_n and_o again_o eustoch_n again_o ep_v 17._o add_v eustoch_n when_o the_o imperial_a letter_n have_v draw_v to_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n paula_n see_v there_o the_o admirable_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o christ_n paulinus_n b._n of_o antioch_n and_o epiphanius_n b._n of_o salamina_n in_o cyprus_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o albeit_o the_o election_n of_o flavianus_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n paulinus_n be_v still_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o true_a b._n of_o antioch_n and_o flavianus_n his_o competitor_n in_o reputation_n of_o a_o intruder_n for_o want_v of_o confirmation_n from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o as_o he_o appear_v not_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n which_o have_v confirm_v he_o but_o by_o letter_n write_v to_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o rome_n excuse_v themselves_o you_o say_v they_o 9_o they_o theod._n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 9_o move_v with_o brotherly_a charity_n call_v we_o as_o your_o member_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n etc._n etc._n but_o beside_o that_o our_o church_n be_v new_o restore_v if_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v this_o have_v be_v whole_o abandon_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o many_o of_o ut_fw-la can_v no_o way_n put_v in_o execution_n for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o travail_v to_o constantinople_n upon_o the_o letter_n of_o your_o reverence_n send_v the_o last_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o aquileia_n to_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n have_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o none_o but_o that_o journey_n of_o constantinople_n only_o and_o have_v get_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n remain_v in_o the_o province_n for_o none_o but_o that_o and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n they_o make_v intercession_n for_o flavianus_n fear_v lest_o the_o cause_n of_o paulinus_n will_v be_v favour_v by_o damasus_n by_o reason_n he_o have_v be_v ordain_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n by_o lucifer_n a_o sardinian_a bishop_n and_o legate_n to_o liberius_n predecessor_n to_o damasus_n the_o business_n stand_v thus_o paulinus_n die_v but_o the_o schism_n live_v still_o for_o his_o disciple_n create_v to_o themselves_o euagrius_n a_o new_a bishop_n in_o opposition_n to_o flavianus_n 15._o flavianus_n socrat._v l._n 5._o c._n 15._o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o whereby_o not_o only_a that_o church_n but_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v shake_v 78._o shake_v amb._n ep._n 78._o and_o bring_v into_o danger_n of_o schism_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o siricius_n pope_n call_v a_o council_n at_o capua_n to_o which_o though_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n resort_v in_o great_a number_n yet_o flavianus_n still_o appear_v not_o flavianus_n say_v s._n ambrose_n ibid._n ambrose_n ibid._n have_v cause_n to_o fear_v and_o therefore_o he_o fly_v a_o trial_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n one_o only_a flavianus_n not_o subject_a to_o law_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o appear_v not_o when_o we_o be_v all_o assemble_v the_o council_n to_o prevent_v further_a danger_n of_o schism_n ordain_v that_o while_o the_o cause_n be_v in_o agitation_n communion_n shall_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o catholic_n that_o adhere_v to_o either_o party_n and_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o long_a strife_n commit_v the_o examination_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n to_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n both_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a authority_n of_o his_o see_v in_o the_o east_n as_o also_o because_o his_o pariarkship_n border_v upon_o that_o of_o antioch_n where_o the_o party_n be_v present_a and_o final_o because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n impartial_a the_o sacred_a synod_n say_v s._n ambrose_n ibid._n ambrose_n ibid._n write_v to_o theophilus_n have_v commit_v the_o right_a of_o examine_v this_o cause_n to_o your_o unanimity_n and_o to_o our_o other_o colleague_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o you_o summon_v again_o our_o brother_n flavianus_n and_o moreover_o he_o advertise_v theophilus_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o carry_v the_o business_n so_o as_o that_o the_o final_a decision_n thereof_o may_v be_v reserve_v to_o the_o b_o of_o rome_n and_o confirm_v by_o he_o we_o conceive_v say_v he_o ibid._n he_o ibid._n that_o you_o ought_v to_o refer_v the_o cause_n to_o our_o holy_a brother_n b_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o we_o presume_v you_o will_v judge_v so_o as_o can_v displease_v he_o and_o all_o use_n after_o when_o have_v receive_v the_o tenor_n of_o your_o act_n we_o shall_v see_v you_o have_v judge_v thing_n so_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v undoubted_o allow_v thereof_o we_o will_v receive_v with_o joy_n the_o fruit_n of_o your_o examination_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o s_n ambrose_n hold_v the_o b_o of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o to_o he_o appertain_v the_o final_a decision_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o the_o same_o
proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o which_o error_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v also_o testify_v and_o learned_o confute_v by_o that_o famous_a cardinal_n bessarion_n and_o by_o gennadius_n scholarius_n in_o two_o special_a treatise_n of_o this_o subject_n and_o before_o they_o by_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n graec._n aquine_n opusc_n contr_n error_n graec._n against_o who_o write_v nicolaus_n cabasilas_n who_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o vatican_n &_o be_v soon_o after_o confute_v by_o demetrius_n cidoinus_n a_o greek_a catholic_a and_o to_o omit_v other_o protestant_a writer_n thomas_n rogers_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n peruse_v &_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n allow_v to_o be_v public_a say_v 25._o say_v art_n 3._o propos_fw-fr 3._o pag._n 25._o this_o discover_v all_o they_o to_o be_v impious_a &_o to_o err_v from_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n which_o hold_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n but_o not_o from_o the_o son_n as_o this_o day_n the_o grecian_n the_o russian_n the_o muscovite_n maintain_v and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o he_o allege_v other_o author_n final_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o kekerman_n 63._o kekerman_n sistem_fw-la theolog._n pag._n 63._o and_o doctor_n white_a 8._o white_a way_n ep._n ded._n n._n 8._o affirm_v that_o the_o latin_a &_o greek_a church_n break_v upon_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o greek_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n and_o err_v fundamental_o for_o what_o error_n can_v be_v more_o fundamental_a then_o that_o which_o be_v immediate_o against_o the_o bless_a trinity_n god_n himself_o this_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o but_o that_o you_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v absurd_a in_o profess_v that_o protestant_n be_v accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o heretic_n you_o seek_v to_o free_v the_o grecian_n from_o heresy_n which_o you_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o perform_v but_o by_o falsify_v catholic_a author_n 1._o therefore_o to_o this_o end_n you_o allege_v mark_fw-mi allege_v pag._n 334._o light_v q._n mark_fw-mi these_o word_n as_o of_o cardinal_n tolet_n gracus_fw-la intelligens_fw-la dicit_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la procedere_fw-la per_fw-la filium_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la significat_fw-la quà m_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la dicimus_fw-la and_o in_o your_o text_n you_o english_a they_o thus_o the_o understand_a greek_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v by_o the_o son_n signify_v thereby_o nothing_o but_o what_o we_o ourselves_o profess_v o_o egregious_a imposture_n tolet_n there_o explicate_v these_o word_n of_o s._n john_n qui_fw-la à _fw-la patre_fw-la procedit_fw-la express_o condemn_v the_o greek_n of_o error_n in_o that_o point_n and_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n cyrill_n that_o these_o word_n of_o s._n john_n confute_v their_o error_n locus_fw-la prasen_n &c._n &c._n this_o present_a passage_n say_v he_o 25._o he_o in_o caput_fw-la 15._o joan._n annot_n 25._o do_v no_o way_n favour_v the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n but_o rather_o confute_v and_o overthrow_v the_o same_o for_o out_o of_o these_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n and_o the_o father_n which_o cyrill_n though_o a_o understanding_n grecian_n confess_v say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n which_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o what_o we_o say_v these_o be_v toler_n word_n in_o which_o you_o see_v he_o charge_v the_o greek_n with_o error_n in_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o thereby_o convince_v you_o of_o a_o untruth_n in_o say_v 334._o say_v pag._n 334._o that_o tolet_n free_v they_o from_o heresy_n in_o this_o point_n but_o to_o make_v good_a this_o untruth_n you_o corrupt_v his_o word_n for_o whereas_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o late_a greek_n but_o only_o of_o that_o ancient_a and_o orthodox_n father_n s._n cyrill_n say_v cyrillus_n graecus_n intelligens_fw-la etc._n etc._n cyrill_n a_o understanding_n grecian_n say_v in_o this_o point_n no_o other_o thing_n but_o what_o we_o profess_v you_o both_o in_o your_o latin_a and_o english_a leave_v out_o cyrillus_n as_o if_o tolet_n have_v not_o mention_v he_o and_o translate_v graecus_n intelligens_fw-la in_o the_o plural_a number_n the_o understand_a greek_n which_o you_o do_v purposely_o to_o persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o tolet_n speak_v not_o of_o s._n cyrill_n nor_o of_o any_o particular_a man_n but_o in_o general_a of_o the_o late_a grecians_z and_o free_v they_o from_o that_o error_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o so_o express_o charge_v they_o can_v there_o be_v a_o more_o wilful_a falfication_n than_o this_o 2._o but_o your_o deal_n with_o other_o be_v no_o better_a you_o cite_v a._n cite_v pag_n 331._o light_v a._n castro_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v divide_v many_o hundred_o of_o year_n from_o the_o latin_n but_o because_o you_o will_v have_v your_o reader_n conceive_v that_o castro_n hold_v they_o not_o to_o be_v heretic_n and_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n you_o set_v down_o these_o word_n as_o he_o per_fw-la multas_fw-la annorum_fw-la centurias_fw-la graci_n à _fw-la latinis_fw-la divisi_fw-la with_o be_v a_o plain_a falsification_n for_o castro_n word_n be_v dvodecima_fw-la haeresis_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la negate_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la procedere_fw-la à _fw-la patre_fw-la &_o à _fw-la filio_fw-la hanc_fw-la haeresim_fw-la docuerunt_fw-la &_o tutati_fw-la sunt_fw-la graeci_fw-la per_fw-la multas_fw-la annorum_fw-la centurias_fw-la itae_fw-la ut_fw-la haec_fw-la fuerit_fw-la una_fw-la ex_fw-la praecipuis_fw-la causis_fw-la propter_fw-la quas_fw-la à _fw-la romana_fw-la &_o catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la divisi_fw-la sint_fw-la the_o twelth_n heresy_n be_v that_o which_o deni_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n this_o heresy_n the_o greek_n have_v teach_v and_o mansain_v many_o hundred_o of_o year_n in_o so_o much_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a cause_n for_o which_o they_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a and_o catholic_a church_n here_o therefore_o you_o mangle_v castro_n word_n and_o to_o maintain_v your_o undertake_a falsity_n that_o the_o greek_n notwithstanding_o their_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a and_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n you_o conceal_v that_o he_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n and_o that_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v their_o heresy_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 3._o with_o like_a prejudice_n of_o conscience_n you_o cite_v 335._o cite_v pag._n 335._o azor_n who_o in_o that_o very_a place_n decimo_fw-la place_n instit._fw-la l._n moral_a part_n 1._o l._n 8._o c._n 20._o §._o decimo_fw-la direct_o affirm_v the_o greek_n to_o be_v heretic_n and_o that_o although_o some_o think_v that_o concern_v their_o belief_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n and_o some_o other_o few_o point_n of_o faith_n they_o differ_v not_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n real_o and_o in_o sense_n but_o only_o in_o word_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v not_o heretic_n but_o schismatics_n yet_o he_o conclude_v that_o whatsoever_o their_o belief_n concern_v these_o article_n be_v they_o be_v heretic_n and_o perhaps_o in_o these_o very_a point_n because_o they_o err_v culpable_o in_o they_o but_o that_o we_o often_o call_v they_o schismatic_n because_o we_o retain_v the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o speech_n for_o first_o the_o greek_n divide_v themselves_o often_o from_o the_o church_n by_o schism_n and_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n bring_v heresy_n into_o the_o church_n 4._o you_o cite_v 334._o cite_v pag._n 334._o suarez_n say_v that_o the_o greek_n be_v schismatics_n because_o they_o err_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n though_o indeed_o they_o be_v heretic_n also_o because_o they_o deny_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o head_n and_o immediate_o before_o he_o have_v allege_v out_o of_o s._n hierome_n that_o all_o schismatic_n feign_v to_o themselves_o some_o heresy_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n without_o cause_n again_o he_o express_o say_v 2._o say_v de_fw-fr deo_fw-la trino_fw-la &_o uno_fw-la l._n 10._o c._n 1._o n._n 2._o that_o the_o greek_n err_v in_o hold_v the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n and_o that_o for_o this_o error_n among_o many_o other_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v divide_v itself_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n deny_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n these_o be_v the_o author_n which_o you_o produce_v to_o save_v the_o greek_n from_o the_o infamous_a note_n of_o heresy_n wherein_o you_o
hereafter_o nor_o to_o write_v nor_o send_v to_o we_o any_o writing_n concern_v these_o thing_n for_o you_o treat_v the_o divine_n which_o be_v light_n of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a you_o honour_v and_o extol_v they_o in_o word_n but_o with_o your_o deed_n reject_v they_o seek_v to_o wrest_v out_o of_o our_o hand_n their_o holy_a and_o divine_a word_n with_o we_o may_v use_v to_o confute_v you_o wherefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v we_o you_o have_v free_v we_o from_o care_n and_o therefore_o go_v on_o in_o your_o own_o way_n write_v no_o more_o to_o we_o of_o your_o doctrine_n but_o only_o for_o friendship_n sake_n if_o you_o please_v all_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o justus_n caluinus_n relate_v out_o of_o the_o censure_n or_o epistle_n of_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o chytraeus_n and_o crusius_n two_o chief_a protestant_n of_o germany_n where_o justus_n caluinus_n live_v &_o write_v chytraeus_n and_o crusius_n be_v then_o live_v who_o may_v and_o will_v have_v tax_v he_o of_o falsehood_n if_o he_o have_v misalleage_v they_o wherefore_o i_o can_v sufficient_o admire_v your_o boldness_n who_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o grecian_n accord_n in_o doctrine_n with_o protestant_n and_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n dare_v adventure_n to_o allege_v this_o censure_n of_o the_o patriarch_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_a not_o only_o by_o the_o catholic_a edition_n but_o even_o by_o that_o of_o wittenberg_n and_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o chyrtraeus_n and_o crusius_n that_o the_o greek_n in_o very_a few_o point_n of_o those_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o protestant_n and_o we_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o they_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o heretical_a &_o avoid_v they_o as_o heretic_n for_o so_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o patriarch_n call_v they_o but_o yet_o as_o justus_n caluinus_n fin_fw-fr caluinus_n pag._n 1â_n fin_fw-fr right_o observe_v the_o accordance_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o so_o many_o chief_a head_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o excuse_v they_o from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o other_o error_n their_o obstinate_a deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n be_v alone_o sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o absolute_a schismatics_n and_o heretic_n incapable_a of_o salvation_n as_o s._n athanasius_n have_v express_o declare_v in_o his_o creed_n you_o therefore_o have_v tell_v a_o most_o solemn_a untruth_n in_o say_v 330._o say_v pag._n 330._o that_o the_o greek_n which_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o ruinate_v any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o save_v truth_n sect_n iii_o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n produce_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n examine_v for_o the_o corroboration_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n you_o produce_v 387._o produce_v pag._n 387._o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n as_o a_o especial_a pattern_n of_o disobedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o case_n be_v this_o the_o people_n of_o bulgaria_n have_v send_v for_o preacher_n to_o rome_n and_o be_v instruct_v by_o they_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n submit_v themselves_o voluntary_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v govern_v immediate_o by_o he_o as_o part_v of_o his_o roman_a diocese_n 13._o diocese_n spond_n anno_o 869._o n._n 13._o nevertheless_o because_o the_o grecian_n challenge_v the_o temporal_a state_n of_o that_o province_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n ignatius_n suppose_v the_o spiritualty_n of_o it_o to_o belong_v in_o right_a to_o his_o diocese_n usurp_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o consecrate_v a_o bishop_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n send_v he_o thither_o with_o other_o priest_n for_o which_o he_o be_v check_v by_o adrian_n pope_n 1._o pope_n spond_n anno_o 871._o n._n 1._o and_o afterward_o excommunicate_v by_o john_n the_o eight_o if_o within_o thirty_o day_n after_o notification_n of_o the_o sentence_n unto_o he_o he_o do_v not_o desist_v from_o that_o usurpation_n he_o die_v before_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o sentence_n at_o constantinople_n 8._o constantinople_n spond_n anno_o 878._o n._n 1._o &_o 8._o which_o if_o he_o have_v receive_v before_o his_o death_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v surcease_v from_o that_o claim_n which_o he_o make_v not_o out_o of_o any_o desire_n or_o intention_n of_o oppose_v the_o see_v apostolic_a who_o authority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n he_o acknowledge_v both_o in_o appeal_n to_o it_o against_o photius_n who_o have_v intrude_v himself_o into_o his_o church_n and_o also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o nicolas_n pope_n 3._o pope_n extat_fw-la ep._n in_o syn._n 8._o act._n 3._o and_o final_o that_o he_o always_o live_v &_o die_v in_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n appear_v by_o diverse_a letter_n of_o john_n the_o eight_o write_v after_o his_o death_n 8._o death_n spond_n anno_o 878_o n._n 8._o his_o example_n therefore_o can_v be_v no_o help_n to_o your_o cause_n sect_n iv_o the_o egyptian_n aethiopian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n african_n and_o asian_o which_o call_n themselves_o christian_n and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n the_o egyptian_n and_o aethiopian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n embrace_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n which_o hold_v but_o one_o nature_n one_o will_n and_o operation_n in_o christ_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n anathematise_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o they_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n still_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o error_n in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o of_o late_a year_n goâsaluus_fw-la rodericius_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n be_v send_v into_o aethiopia_n 49._o aethiopia_n pran_n sachin_n hist_o soc._n jesu_n l._n 1._o n._n 49._o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n for_o joannes_n nunnez_fw-fr who_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v send_v thither_o honour_v with_o the_o title_n and_o dignity_n of_o patriarch_n claudius_n then_o king_n of_o aethiopia_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o patriarch_n from_o rome_n have_v in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o govern_v the_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n itself_o moreover_o that_o he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n approve_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nor_o allow_v of_o leo_n pope_n and_o that_o dioscorus_n have_v do_v well_o in_o excommunicate_v he_o final_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o aethiopian_n and_o egyptian_n in_o this_o particular_a error_n of_o eutyches_n be_v the_o sole_a cause_n of_o their_o continuance_n in_o schism_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o as_o cardinal_n peron_n 63._o peron_n repliq._n chap._n 63._o answer_v our_o late_a sovereign_a k._n james_n they_o have_v often_o offer_v and_o be_v all_o ready_a at_o this_o day_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o his_o communion_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o anathematise_v eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n the_o armenian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n &_o communion_n be_v guilty_a of_o many_o heresy_n they_o acknowledge_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o christ_n with_o the_o eutychian_o they_o deny_v his_o divinity_n with_o the_o arian_n they_o affirm_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o with_o the_o grecian_n they_o rebaptize_v they_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o donatist_n and_o final_o they_o hold_v many_o other_o gross_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n relate_v by_o prateolus_n 67._o prateolus_n l._n 1_o tit_n 67._o out_o of_o guido_n carmelita_n and_o nicephorus_n calixtus_n who_o therefore_o right_o term_v they_o a_o sink_n of_o all_o heresy_n the_o russian_n agree_v with_o the_o grecian_n in_o deni_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n so_o have_v confess_v your_o minister_n thomas_n rogers_n 25._o rogers_n art_n 3._o propos_fw-fr 3._o pag._n 25._o moreover_o they_o defend_v other_o heretical_a tenet_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 40._o relate_v by_o joannes_n sacranius_n rhuten_n sacranius_n elucid_n error_n &_o rit_n rhuten_n and_o prateolus_n 4._o prateolus_n l._n 6._o tit_n 4._o whereunto_o i_o add_v that_o stanislaus_n socolovius_fw-la in_o the_o attendance_n of_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n who_o divine_a he_o be_v visit_v those_o northern_a country_n and_o come_v to_o leopolis_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o russia_n report_v of_o it_o orient_n it_o praefat._n censura_fw-la orient_n that_o although_o it_o have_v
your_o protestant_a church_n be_v free_a from_o vice_n you_o say_v 342._o say_v pag._n 342._o the_o great_a vice_n you_o can_v impute_v unto_o protestant_n be_v that_o they_o impugn_v the_o pope_n indulgence_n the_o noursery_n of_o all_o vice_n your_o deny_v and_o impugn_v the_o pope_n indulgence_n we_o reckon_v not_o among_o your_o vice_n but_o among_o your_o error_n against_o faith_n of_o your_o vice_n i_o forbear_v to_o speak_v your_o own_o man_n both_o abroad_o as_o luther_n caluin_n melancthon_n brentius_n bucer_n eberus_n wigandus_n and_o diverse_a other_o and_o at_o home_n m._n geffrey_n m._n stub_n both_o of_o they_o great_a preacher_n and_o the_o puritan_n in_o their_o mild_a defence_n have_v do_v it_o for_o i_o read_v they_o and_o they_o will_v inform_v you_o that_o under_o the_o papacy_n man_n be_v religious_a and_o give_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o good_a work_n but_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o your_o gospel_n rely_v on_o their_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n be_v become_v careless_a of_o good_a work_n dissolute_a proud_a envious_a malicious_a disdainful_a covetous_a ambitious_a that_o your_o eye_n ought_v to_o gush_v out_o with_o tear_n to_o behold_v the_o misery_n of_o your_o suppose_a church_n the_o great_a ignorance_n the_o superficial_a worship_n of_o god_n the_o fearful_a blasphemy_n and_o swear_v in_o house_n and_o street_n the_o dishonour_n of_o superior_n the_o pride_n cruelty_n fornication_n adultery_n drunkenness_n covetousness_n usury_n and_o other_o like_a abomination_n that_o youth_n among_o you_o become_v daily_o less_o tractable_a and_o more_o bold_a to_o commit_v those_o vice_n which_o in_o former_a time_n man_n of_o year_n know_v not_o that_o instead_o of_o fast_v you_o have_v bring_v in_o bibbing_a and_o banquet_v and_o instead_o of_o pray_v swear_v and_o final_o that_o you_o equal_v the_o jew_n in_o hypocrisy_n the_o turk_n in_o impiety_n and_o the_o tartar_n in_o iniquity_n all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n be_v the_o free_a confession_n of_o your_o brethren_n faithful_o set_v down_o in_o their_o own_o word_n in_o a_o late_a treatise_n of_o the_o protestant_n private_a spirit_n 4._o spirit_n chap._n 9_o sect_n 8._o subdivis_fw-la 4._o and_o it_o be_v so_o strong_a a_o argument_n against_o your_o pretend_a reformation_n that_o your_o learned_a brother_n eberus_n stick_v not_o to_o say_v cor._n say_v praefat._n comment_fw-fr philip._n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la cor._n that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o enormous_a wickedness_n of_o your_o ministry_n and_o church_n any_o man_n may_v just_o doubt_v whether_o you_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o you_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o great_a vice_n we_o can_v impute_v unto_o protestant_n be_v that_o they_o impugn_v the_o pope_n indulgence_n which_o you_o false_o call_v the_o nursery_n of_o all_o vice_n for_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o not_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n but_o your_o new_a protestant_a gospel_n be_v the_o nursery_n of_o all_o vice_n and_o that_o in_o lieu_n of_o a_o reformation_n which_o you_o pretend_v call_v your_o self_n the_o reform_a church_n you_o have_v make_v a_o deformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n sect_n iv_o that_o protestant_n by_o schism_n have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o censure_v your_o protestant_a church_n of_o schism_n injust_o you_o say_v 341._o say_v pag._n 341._o the_o great_a schism_n you_o can_v impute_v to_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n be_v that_o they_o will_v be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o proud_o and_o impious_o divide_v herself_o from_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o little_a before_o 340._o before_o pag._n 340._o you_o have_v tax_v bellarmine_n for_o hold_v that_o if_o those_o of_o the_o east_n be_v but_o only_a schismatic_n by_o deny_v subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o that_o alone_o without_o any_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o conclude_v they_o in_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n two_o thing_n may_v here_o be_v dispute_v the_o one_o whether_o schism_n alone_o without_o heresy_n exclude_v man_n from_o salvation_n the_o other_o whether_o protestant_n be_v schismatic_n concern_v the_o first_o that_o schismatic_n though_o no_o way_n guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o the_o very_a fault_n of_o schism_n alone_o be_v incapable_a of_o salvation_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o certain_a that_o no_o man_n that_o understand_v even_o the_o ordinary_a principle_n of_o divinity_n or_o be_v verse_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n can_v be_v ignorant_a thereof_o for_o schism_n be_v of_o itself_o a_o division_n or_o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o he_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v save_v so_o it_o be_v that_o a_o schismatic_n die_v in_o schism_n be_v save_v god_n say_v s._n irenaeus_n 62._o irenaeus_n l._n 4._o c._n 62._o shall_v judge_v those_o that_o make_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n ambitious_a man_n not_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n but_o rather_o embrace_v their_o own_o interest_n than_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o little_a and_o light_a cause_n divide_v the_o great_a and_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n for_o in_o the_o end_n they_o can_v make_v any_o reformation_n so_o important_a as_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o schism_n be_v pernicious_a s._n cyprian_n eccles_n cyprian_n l_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la eccles_n do_v they_o that_o assemble_v themselves_o without_o the_o church_n think_v christ_n to_o be_v with_o they_o in_o their_o assembly_n although_o they_o shall_v be_v drag_v to_o death_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o this_o spot_n be_v not_o wash_v away_o from_o they_o with_o their_o blood_n the_o inexpiable_a and_o inexcusable_a crime_n of_o discord_n be_v not_o purge_v with_o death_n itself_o he_o can_v be_v a_o martyr_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n s._n chrysostome_n 11._o chrysostome_n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la ephes_n hom._n 11._o nothing_o do_v so_o much_o stir_v up_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n although_o we_o shall_v do_v innumerable_a good_a work_n if_o we_o divide_v the_o unity_n and_o fullness_n of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v be_v punish_v no_o less_o severe_o than_o they_o who_o tear_v his_o natural_a body_n s._n augustine_n donat._n augustine_n ep._n 152._o ad_fw-la popul_fw-la factio_fw-la donat._n whosoever_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o he_o think_v himself_o to_o live_v never_o so_o laudable_o yet_o for_o this_o only_a crime_n that_o he_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o and_o speak_v of_o emeritus_n a_o heretical_a bishop_n emer_n bishop_n serm_fw-la super_fw-la gest_n cum_fw-la emer_n he_o can_v have_v salvation_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v have_v honour_n he_o may_v have_v sacrament_n he_o may_v have_v the_o gospel_n he_o may_v have_v and_o preach_v belief_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o salvation_n he_o can_v find_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o 204._o again_o ep._n 204._o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o divide_v from_o the_o heap_n of_o unity_n though_o thou_o shall_v he_o burn_v alive_a for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o thou_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a death_n s._n fulgentius_n 39_o fulgentius_n dofide_fw-la ad_fw-la pet._n c._n 39_o believe_v this_o as_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a that_o no_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n though_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n though_o he_o give_v never_o so_o great_a alm_n yea_o though_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v it_o be_v now_o certain_a that_o a_o schismatic_n die_v in_o schism_n can_v be_v save_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o protestant_n be_v schismatics_n and_o certain_o if_o s._n augustine_n 104._o augustine_n ep._n 170._o &_o count_v gauden_n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o &_o cont_n lit_fw-fr peti_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 104._o right_o conclude_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v schismatics_n because_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o that_o church_n which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n his_o argument_n have_v the_o same_o force_n against_o protestant_n for_o if_o as_o he_o have_v teach_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o thereby_o as_o by_o a_o undoubted_a mark_n be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o congregation_n it_o follow_v by_o inevitable_a consequence_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o none_o else_o but_o she_o be_v universal_o spread_v
s._n peter_n head_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o be_v subject_a to_o one_o occasion_n of_o schism_n among_o they_o may_v be_v take_v away_o this_o passage_n you_o allege_v out_o of_o s._n hierome_n in_o your_o laâe_a sermon_n preach_v at_o durham_n before_o his_o majesty_n 42._o majesty_n pag._n 42._o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o bishop_n against_o the_o scot_n a_o bishop_n than_o be_v necessary_a to_o appease_v the_o contention_n that_o may_v happen_v among_o your_o minister_n but_o contention_n and_o strife_n may_v also_o arise_v among_o bishop_n a_o archbishop_n therefore_o be_v necessary_a to_o quiet_v they_o but_o they_o may_v likewise_o arise_v between_o archbishop_n as_o they_o do_v between_o theophilus_n &_o chrysostome_n flavianus_n and_o dioscorus_n cyril_n and_o nestorius_n who_o shall_v end_v they_o if_o you_o say_v a_o general_a council_n who_o shall_v summon_v that_o council_n not_o a_o temporal_a prince_n for_o no_o one_o have_v power_n over_o all_o nation_n from_o whence_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v call_v beside_o that_o temporal_a prince_n be_v often_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o and_o when_o a_o general_a council_n be_v call_v what_o if_o the_o bishop_n agree_v not_o or_o decline_v from_o the_o truth_n as_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n &_o the_o second_o of_o ephesus_n they_o do_v who_o shall_v compose_v their_o difference_n and_o judge_v their_o cause_n unless_o some_o one_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n who_o judgement_n be_v infallible_a and_o to_o who_o censure_n all_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v wherefore_o the_o puritan_n argument_n propound_v by_o m._n cartwright_n 58â_n cartwright_n second_o reply_v part_n 1._o pag._n 58â_n conclude_v evident_o against_o you_o that_o this_o point_n of_o keep_v peace_n in_o the_o church_n be_v one_o of_o those_o which_o require_v aswell_o a_o pope_n over_o all_o archbishop_n as_o one_o archbishop_n over_o all_o bishop_n in_o a_o realm_n from_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o head_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n universal_o spread_v over_o the_o earth_n take_v her_o unity_n even_o as_o there_o be_v say_v s._n cyprian_n eccles_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n many_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o one_o light_n many_o bow_n of_o one_o tree_n and_o yet_o one_o strength_n found_v in_o one_o root_n and_o many_o brook_n flow_v from_o one_o fountain_n &_o a_o unity_n thereof_o conserve_v in_o the_o spring_n even_o so_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n cast_v forth_o her_o light_n displai_v her_o beam_n every_o where_o throughout_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o her_o light_n be_v one_o she_o extend_v her_o bow_n over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o spread_v her_o flow_a river_n far_o and_o near_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v one_o head_n one_o beginning_n and_o one_o fruitful_a and_o plentiful_a mother_n and_o lest_o you_o may_v answer_n that_o this_o one_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n mention_v by_o s._n cyprian_n be_v none_o other_o but_o christ_n he_o declare_v himself_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n our_o lord_n to_o manifest_a unity_n have_v constitute_v one_o chair_n &_o ordain_v by_o his_o authority_n that_o unity_n shall_v have_v beginning_n from_o one_o and_o explicate_v who_o this_o one_o be_v he_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n upon_o peter_n be_v one_o he_o build_v his_o church_n and_o to_o he_o commend_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v etc._n etc._n the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o and_o therefore_o he_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n 55._o peter_n ep._n 55._o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n proceed_v s._n augustine_n 13._o augustine_n l._n the_o pastor_n c._n 13._o our_o lord_n commit_v his_o sheep_n to_o peter_n to_o commend_v unity_n in_o he_o there_o be_v many_o apostle_n and_o to_o one_o it_o be_v say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n s._n leo_n sva_fw-la leo_n serm._n 3._o the_o assump_n sva_fw-la peter_n be_v one_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v constitate_v over_o the_o vocation_n of_o all_o nation_n over_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o although_o there_o be_v many_o priest_n and_o many_o pastor_n in_o the_o people_n of_o god_n yet_o peter_n may_v peculiar_o govern_v they_o all_o who_o christ_n also_o principal_o rule_v and_o s._n bernard_n speak_v to_o eugenius_n pope_n consider_v pope_n l._n 2._o the_o consider_v thou_o be_v one_o art_n pastor_n not_o only_o of_o the_o sheep_n but_o of_o all_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n christ_n commit_v all_o his_o sheep_n to_o one_o to_o commend_v unity_n in_o one_o flock_n and_o in_o one_o shepherd_n where_o there_o be_v unity_n there_o be_v perfection_n if_o therefore_o christ_n commit_v his_o whole_a flock_n to_o peter_n be_v one_o if_o one_o head_n among_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v necessary_a to_o take_v away_o occasion_n of_o schism_n among_o they_o their_o number_n be_v but_o small_a how_o much_o more_o necessary_a be_v it_o that_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n the_o whole_a church_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o bishop_n and_o people_n be_v more_o liable_a to_o schism_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o one_o head_n who_o although_o he_o be_v a_o weak_a man_n christ_n pray_v for_o he_o 22.32_o he_o luc._n 22.32_o have_v secure_v we_o that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v confirm_v all_o his_o brethren_n have_v place_v he_o 166._o he_o aug._n ep_v 166._o in_o the_o chair_n of_o unity_n in_o which_o even_o ill_a man_n be_v enforce_v to_o speak_v good_a thing_n and_o though_o he_o be_v but_o one_o yet_o he_o be_v assist_v by_o other_o bishop_n as_o his_o coadjutor_n and_o they_o by_o inferion_n pastor_n that_o so_o the_o bishop_n watch_v over_o the_o inferior_a pastor_n and_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n over_o the_o bishop_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n &_o labour_n thereof_o may_v be_v divide_v among_o many_o and_o yet_o chief_o commit_v to_o one_o to_o who_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o have_v recourse_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v to_o peter_n among_o the_o most_o bless_a apostle_n say_v s._n leo_n 84._o leo_n ep._n 84._o there_o be_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o honour_n a_o difference_n of_o power_n and_o although_o the_o election_n of_o they_o all_o be_v alike_o yet_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o one_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v above_o the_o rest_n in_o authority_n from_o which_o model_n the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n have_v proceed_v &_o with_o great_a providence_n it_o have_v be_v ordain_v that_o all_o shall_v not_o claim_v all_o thing_n to_o themselves_o but_o that_o in_o several_a province_n there_o shall_v be_v several_a bishop_n who_o sentence_n shall_v hold_v the_o first_o rank_n among_o their_o brethren_n and_o again_o that_o other_o constitute_v in_o the_o great_a city_n shall_v have_v a_o more_o ample_a charge_n and_o that_o by_o they_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v flow_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o none_o may_v ever_o dissent_v from_o their_o head_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o renown_a father_n and_o the_o same_o have_v be_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n and_o you_o that_o oppose_v it_o by_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o wren_n head_n place_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o a_o man_n show_v yourself_o not_o to_o understand_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n 16.13_o god_n math._n 16.13_o but_o to_o measure_v they_o by_o your_o shallow_a capacity_n not_o consider_v that_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o flock_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o consultation_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o as_o without_o his_o assistance_n no_o multitude_n of_o prelate_n be_v able_a to_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n so_o with_o his_o help_n one_o may_v perform_v it_o as_o experience_n teach_v but_o you_o object_n 350._o object_n pag_n 350._o 1._o that_o we_o can_v have_v certitude_n of_o any_o b._n of_o rome_n because_o his_o ordination_n depend_v upon_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o ordainer_n than_o which_o what_o can_v be_v more_o uncertain_a this_o you_o have_v object_v before_o and_o have_v receive_v your_o answer_n 7._o answer_n chap._n 5._o sect_n 7._o and_o s._n cyprian_n 9_o cyprian_n l._n 4._o ep_n 9_o have_v tell_v you_o that_o to_o raise_v such_o doubt_n be_v to_o doubt_v of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o to_o rebel_v against_o his_o ordination_n 2._o you_o object_n 350._o object_n pag._n 350._o john_n the_o twelth_n want_v year_n and_o other_o condition_n necessary_a for_o that_o dignity_n take_v possession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o intrusion_n and_o that_o therefore_o in_o his_o time_n the_o
authority_n and_o command_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o council_n itself_o so_o require_v and_o the_o condemnation_n of_o all_o the_o error_n of_o wiclef_n and_o hus_n ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o a_o special_a bull_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o command_n that_o all_o suspect_v of_o those_o heresy_n shall_v be_v demand_v whether_o they_o believe_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n have_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o lose_v upon_o earth_n and_o whether_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n canonical_o choose_v his_o proper_a name_n express_v be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o have_v supreme_a power_n over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n these_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o council_n which_o show_n that_o your_o object_v it_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n and_o church_n be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n sect_n viii_o the_o same_o matter_n prosecute_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n there_o be_v say_v you_o 358._o you_o pag_n 358._o a_o council_n gather_v at_o basil_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n martin_n the_o five_o what_o a_o general_a council_n call_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n then_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o as_o a_o king_n can_v by_o his_o authority_n call_v a_o parliament_n of_o those_o that_o be_v not_o his_o subject_n so_o neither_o can_v the_o pope_n by_o his_o authority_n have_v call_v a_o general_a council_n have_v not_o his_o authority_n extend_v itself_o over_o the_o universal_a church_n so_o unaduised_o be_v you_o catch_v in_o your_o own_o snare_n you_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n out_o of_o binius_fw-la that_o this_o council_n be_v after_o confirm_v by_o eugenius_n how_o confirm_v be_v the_o act_n or_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n confirm_v by_o eugenius_n so_o will_v you_o persuade_v your_o reader_n but_o binius_fw-la speak_v not_o of_o the_o confirmation_n of_o any_o act_n or_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n but_o only_o of_o ratify_v the_o call_n and_o beginning_n of_o it_o under_o the_o presidence_n of_o julianus_n caesarinus_n his_o legate_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o his_o predecessor_n which_o be_v also_o observe_v and_o prove_v by_o canus_n postrem_fw-la canus_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la loc_fw-la cap._n postrem_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o begin_v and_o for_o a_o time_n continue_v by_o lawful_a authority_n but_o afterward_o become_v schismatical_a and_o be_v just_o condemn_v by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o lateran_n 11._o lateran_n sub_fw-la leon._n 10._o sess_v 11._o as_o a_o conventicle_n schismatical_a sedition_n and_o of_o no_o authority_n 1._o because_o as_o turrecremata_fw-la a_o learned_a writer_n of_o that_o time_n advertise_v 10â_o advertise_v sum._n de_fw-fr eccl._n l._n 2._o c._n 10â_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o all_o general_a counsel_n they_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o those_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v send_v to_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n 2._o for_o that_o they_o presume_v to_o pronounce_v a_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n against_o eugenius_n pope_n and_o that_o in_o a_o most_o temerarious_a manner_n because_o there_o be_v then_o no_o legate_n of_o he_o in_o the_o council_n all_o the_o chief_a bishop_n be_v depart_v &_o a_o certain_a cardinal_n of_o arles_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n have_v usurp_v the_o place_n of_o precedent_n and_o because_o there_o want_v voice_n of_o bishop_n to_o make_v up_o number_n they_o take_v into_o the_o council_n a_o great_a multitude_n of_o priest_n so_o that_o now_o against_o all_o order_n and_o form_n of_o counsel_n it_o be_v not_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n but_o of_o priest_n 3_o as_o turrecremata_fw-la witness_v ibid._n witness_v ibid._n the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n even_o such_o as_o they_o be_v be_v not_o unanimous_o agree_v upon_o both_o because_o many_o prelate_n and_o doctor_n as_o well_o of_o canon_n as_o of_o civil_a law_n make_v resistance_n unto_o they_o and_o also_o because_o understanding_n that_o ambassador_n send_v by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o castille_n be_v on_o their_o way_n and_o near_o at_o hand_n they_o hasten_v fraudulent_o to_o define_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o know_v those_o legate_n will_v not_o assent_v unto_o 4._o because_o as_o s._n antoninus_n report_v 4._o report_v part._n 3._o tit_n 22._o c._n 10._o §._o 4._o julianus_n the_o cardinal_n who_o eugnius_n have_v appoint_v precedent_n leave_v that_o schismatical_a conventicle_n return_v to_o the_o pope_n who_o by_o apostolical_a authority_n dissolve_v their_o assembly_n but_o they_o stop_v their_o ear_n begin_v to_o summon_v eugenius_n be_v solicit_v thereunto_o by_o the_o duke_n of_o milan_n his_o profess_a enemy_n on_o the_o other_o side_n sigismond_n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o venetian_n dissuade_v they_o from_o any_o further_a proceed_n which_o notwithstanding_o they_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o deposition_n against_o eugenius_n and_o erect_v to_o themselves_o a_o new_a idol_n amadaeus_n duke_n of_o savoy_n call_v he_o fellix_fw-la the_o five_o to_o who_o obedience_n be_v yield_v in_o his_o own_o territory_n thus_o s._n antoninus_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o felix_n who_o the_o council_n create_v be_v acknowledge_v no_o where_o but_o in_o his_o own_o dukedom_n the_o whole_a church_n adhere_v still_o to_o eugenius_n believe_v that_o the_o council_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v he_o yea_o felix_n himself_o 406._o himself_o see_v binius_fw-la in_o not._n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la council_n pag._n 406._o acknowledge_v the_o same_o resign_v his_o usurp_a title_n by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o even_o by_o his_o own_o judgement_n condemn_v all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n by_o which_o he_o have_v be_v choose_v as_o of_o a_o schismatical_a assembly_n and_o hereby_o be_v discover_v the_o falsehood_n of_o what_o you_o allege_v 359._o allege_v pag._n 359._o out_o of_o a_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o that_o council_n demand_v whether_o the_o pope_n will_v condemn_v for_o schismatics_n all_o the_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o the_o emperor_n himself_o with_o king_n &_o prince_n yea_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o do_v approve_v that_o council_n this_o i_o say_v be_v a_o shameful_a untruth_n for_o all_o the_o chief_a prelate_n see_v that_o council_n grow_v to_o open_a schism_n have_v forsake_v it_o there_o be_v remain_v one_o only_a cardinal_n 121._o cardinal_n see_v bin._n to_o 4._o pag._n 121._o and_o he_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o mayor_n part_n of_o they_o that_o remain_v be_v not_o bishop_n but_o priest_n and_o they_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o another_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o they_o 146._o they_o apud_fw-la be_v to_o 4._o pag._n 146._o in_o which_o also_o they_o confess_v the_o paucity_n of_o their_o number_n partly_o excuse_v it_o by_o reason_n and_o partly_o lay_v the_o fault_n on_o eugenius_n that_o he_o have_v draw_v away_o so_o many_o prelate_n from_o they_o how_o then_o be_v it_o true_a that_o all_o the_o cardinal_n bishop_n the_o emperor_n with_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v present_a there_o and_o approve_v this_o council_n how_o be_v it_o true_a since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o three_o year_n before_o the_o dissolution_n of_o this_o conventicle_n be_v assemble_v that_o famous_a general_a council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o this_o basilean_a synagogue_n be_v condemn_v and_o the_o union_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n establish_v pope_n eâgenius_n himself_o assist_v in_o it_o as_o precedent_n the_o emperor_n of_o the_o grecian_n be_v present_n in_o person_n the_o emperor_n of_o the_o latin_n by_o his_o legate_n together_o with_o all_o the_o most_o famous_a prelate_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n above_o 1400._o in_o number_n this_o show_v which_o of_o these_o two_o assembly_n be_v the_o lawful_a council_n which_o the_o schismatical_a yea_o and_o god_n himself_o interpose_v his_o verdict_n declare_v the_o same_o for_o those_o schismakike_v obstinate_o refuse_v to_o break_v up_o their_o assembly_n so_o often_o annul_v by_o the_o pope_n he_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n make_v to_o s._n peter_n 16.19_o peter_n math._n 16.19_o and_o in_o he_o to_o his_o successor_n confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o eugenius_n from_o heaven_n sonâ_n among_o they_o a_o most_o horrible_a plague_n of_o which_o many_o of_o they_o die_v the_o rest_n be_v enforce_v to_o break_v up_o and_o depart_v as_o aeneas_n siluius_n record_v basil_n record_v in_o histor_n conc._n basil_n who_o have_v be_v present_a at_o that_o council_n and_o see_v their_o âemerations_n obstinacy_n against_o the_o roman_a see_v forsake_v it_o and_o detest_a it_o write_v earnest_o against_o it_o all_o this_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v with_o what_o fidelity_n do_v you_o say_v 350._o say_v pag._n 350._o that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o
world_n overwhelm_v in_o the_o dregs_o of_o antichristian_a filthiness_n abominable_a tradition_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o our_o english_a protestant_n why_o do_v jewel_n say_v 4._o say_v apol._n part_n 4._o c._n 4._o the_o truth_n be_v unknown_a at_o that_o time_n and_o unheard_a of_o when_o martin_n luther_n and_o hulderick_n zuinglius_fw-la first_fw-mi come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n why_o perkins_n 307._o perkins_n expos_fw-la of_o the_o creed_n pag._n 307._o that_o during_o the_o space_n of_o 900._o year_n the_o popish_a heresy_n spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o universal_a apostasy_n overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o when_o you_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v extinguish_v before_o luther_n time_n you_o outface_v and_o contradict_v your_o best_a learned_a brethren_n domestic_a &_o foreign_a nor_o be_v it_o a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o tell_v we_o 406._o we_o pag._n 406._o of_o a_o sentence_n of_o caluin_n in_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v perish_v in_o africa_n egypt_n asia_n and_o among_o the_o grecian_n for_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o testimony_n not_o of_o caluin_n only_o but_o of_o many_o other_o if_o caluin_n deny_v that_o which_o together_o with_o they_o he_o affirm_v he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o since_o both_o he_o and_o you_o hold_v the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a i_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o you_o come_v to_o find_v out_o and_o see_v in_o africa_n and_o greece_n a_o church_n that_o be_v invisible_a and_o indeed_o that_o be_v not_o in_o be_v for_o in_o those_o nation_n there_o be_v no_o church_n but_o of_o roman_a catholic_n all_o the_o rest_n which_o in_o they_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n 4._o heretic_n see_v above_o chap._n 41._o sect_n 4._o but_o you_o say_v 369._o say_v pag._n 369._o to_o charge_v protestant_n with_o hold_v a_o decay_n &_o error_n from_o faith_n in_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n unto_o bellarmine_n seem_v in_o effect_n to_o be_v a_o lewd_a slander_n you_o understand_v not_o bellarmine_n or_o else_o witting_o misinterpret_v his_o meaning_n he_o right_o observe_v 11._o observe_v l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n milie_n c._n 11._o that_o protestant_n hold_v two_o church_n the_o one_o visible_a the_o other_o invisible_a whereof_o you_o speak_v say_v init_fw-la say_v pag_n 10._o fin_n 11._o init_fw-la that_o by_o some_o you_o be_v slander_v with_o make_v two_o church_n but_o this_o to_o be_v no_o slander_n bellarmine_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o centurist_n who_o doctrine_n it_o be_v and_o the_o same_o i_o prove_v against_o you_o out_o of_o other_o protestant_n we_o say_v quoth_v whitaker_n 125._o whitaker_n cont._n 2._o q._n 1._o c._n 14._o fol._n 125._o there_o be_v two_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v two_o church_n to_o the_o one_o the_o predestinat_a belong_v to_o the_o other_o the_o reprobate_a the_o one_o of_o these_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v whole_o invisible_a the_o other_o visible_a 1.3_o visible_a ibid._n q._n 2._o c._n 1._o &_o q._n 1._o c._n 3.7.8_o &_o q._n 4._o c._n 1.3_o the_o same_o be_v stiff_o mantain_v by_o fulke_n 3._o fulke_n in_o cap._n 3._o math_n sect_n 3._o &_o in_o c._n 22._o sect_n 3._o when_o caluin_n and_o other_o protestant_n say_v the_o church_n can_v perish_v they_o speak_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n which_o bellarmine_n and_o all_o catholic_n hold_v to_o be_v a_o platonical_a idea_n and_o a_o mere_a chimaera_n no_o where_o existent_a but_o in_o your_o delude_a fancy_n the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n all_o catholic_n with_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a hold_n to_o be_v one_o and_o that_o bellarmine_n prove_v to_o be_v visible_a and_o you_o say_v he_o hold_v that_o to_o have_v perish_v and_o your_o invisible_a church_n only_o to_o have_v remain_v which_o in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o in_o verity_n be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n whole_o perish_v nothing_o remain_v but_o a_o chimaera_n of_o a_o suppose_a invisible_a congregation_n which_o have_v no_o real_a existence_n but_o only_o fantastic_a in_o your_o imagination_n and_o that_o you_o wrong_v bellarmine_n in_o produce_v he_o as_o a_o witness_n that_o a_o absolute_a decay_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v never_o teach_v by_o protestant_n you_o may_v not_o deny_v for_o afterward_o 406._o afterward_o pag._n 406._o you_o confess_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o his_o word_n that_o he_o as_o also_o bozius_n parifi_v you_o with_o the_o donatist_n which_o hold_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o have_v whole_o perish_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o to_o have_v remain_v only_o in_o a_o few_o professor_n of_o their_o sect_n in_o a_o corner_n of_o africa_n which_o doctrine_n differ_v not_o from_o you_o who_o hold_v the_o catholike-church_n to_o have_v be_v utter_o destroy_v for_o many_o year_n and_o now_o to_o have_v no_o be_v but_o where_o your_o protestant_a professor_n be_v wherefore_o i_o ask_v you_o as_o s._n augustin_n 3._o augustin_n l._n 3._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la c._n 3._o do_v the_o donatist_n how_o can_v you_o vaunt_v to_o have_v any_o church_n if_o the_o have_v cease_v for_o so_o long_a time_n and_o again_o 2._o again_o de_fw-fr bapt_a l._n 3._o c._n 2._o if_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v so_o long_a time_n from_o whence_o do_v donatus_n or_o luther_n appear_v from_o what_o earth_n be_v he_o spring_v up_o from_o what_o sea_n be_v he_o come_v forth_o from_o what_o heaven_n be_v he_o fall_v i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o we_o may_v just_o exclaim_v against_o you_o as_o s._n augustine_n do_v against_o the_o donatist_n 101._o donatist_n in_o psal_n 101._o god_n church_n of_o all_o nation_n be_v no_o more_o she_o be_v perish_v so_o say_v they_o that_o be_v not_o in_o she_o o_o impudent_a voice_n they_o say_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v perish_v and_o the_o relic_n remain_v only_o on_o donatus_n on_o luther_n or_o caluin_n his_o side_n o_o proud_a and_o impious_a tongue_n 29._o tongue_n aug._n de_fw-fr ago_o christ._n c._n 29._o sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o faith_n in_o your_o second_o thesis_n 369._o thesis_n pag._n 369._o you_o define_v the_o church_n catholic_a proper_o so_o call_v as_o it_o be_v militant_a to_o be_v multitude_n of_o all_o christian_a believer_n whensoever_o and_o whersoever_o disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n this_o you_o say_v can_v err_v but_o your_o three_o thesis_n be_v ibid._n be_v ibid._n that_o the_o representative_a body_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o the_o prelate_n of_o this_o church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o their_o decree_n of_o faith_n this_o thesis_fw-la destroy_v the_o former_a for_o if_o all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 5.15_o world_n math._n 5.15_o and_o who_o god_n 4.12.14_o god_n ephes_n 4.12.14_o have_v provide_v as_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o his_o church_n and_o give_v to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o like_o little_a one_o waver_v &_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o erroneus_fw-la doctrine_n may_v themselves_o be_v carry_v away_o and_o seduce_v with_o false_a doctrine_n they_o may_v also_o preach_v the_o same_o to_o the_o people_n and_o lead_v they_o into_o error_n what_o mean_v then_o be_v leave_v to_o preserve_v the_o whole_a church_n from_o err_v but_o you_o say_v 366._o say_v pag_n 366._o that_o general_a counsel_n may_v err_v in_o their_o decree_n of_o faith_n some_o of_o your_o own_o romish_a school_n have_v avouch_v these_o some_o if_o we_o believe_v you_o be_v cusanus_fw-la occam_n turrecremata_fw-la gerson_n and_o canus_n but_o we_o can_v believe_v you_o for_o those_o work_n of_o cusanus_fw-la and_o occam_n be_v forbid_v prohib_n forbid_v ind_n lib._n prohib_n and_o cusanus_fw-la have_v retract_v he_o turrecremata_fw-la speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n representative_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o counsel_n which_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o comprehend_v all_o the_o faithful_a both_o pastor_n and_o people_n which_o say_v he_o can_v err_v in_o faith_n though_o some_o member_n thereof_o may_v but_o withal_o he_o prove_v against_o you_o 2._o you_o sum._n the_o eccle_n l._n 4._o c._n 2._o that_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n define_v by_o the_o church_n in_o general_a counsel_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v infallible_a though_o not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o no_o definition_n of_o counsel_n can_v be_v of_o force_n unless_o they_o be_v
above_o the_o little_a hill_n unto_o which_o all_o nation_n shall_v flow_v 2.2_o flow_v isa_n 2.2_o to_o a_o tabernacle_n seat_v in_o the_o sun_n 28.6_o sun_n psal_n 28.6_o of_o which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v say_v psal_n say_v in_o âum_n psal_n he_o place_v his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o church_n in_o manifestation_n or_o open_a view_n not_o in_o a_o corner_n not_o such_o as_o be_v hide_v as_o if_o it_o be_v cover_v etc._n etc._n in_o the_o sun_n he_o place_v his_o tabernacle_n what_o do_v thou_o mean_v o_o heretic_n to_o fly_v into_o darkness_n to_o a_o light_n that_o be_v not_o hide_v under_o a_o bushel_n but_o set_v upon_o a_o candelstick_n which_o if_o protestant_n see_v not_o how_o say_v s._n augustine_n joan._n augustine_n tract_n 2._o in_o 1._o ep._n joan._n can_v i_o call_v they_o other_o then_o blind_a that_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o mountain_n and_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o the_o lamp_n set_v upon_o the_o candelstick_n but_o what_o marvel_n for_o say_v he_o 3._o he_o l._n 2d_o coââ_n parm._n c._n 3._o it_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o all_o heretic_n not_o to_o see_v the_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o world_n be_v most_o clear_a constitute_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o the_o unity_n whereof_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v can_v no_o more_o warrant_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n from_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a final_o we_o believe_v with_o s._n augustine_n 104._o augustine_n cont._n lit_fw-fr petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 104._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v this_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o catholic_n do_v you_o herein_o accord_v with_o we_o do_v you_o hold_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v always_o visible_a and_o always_o as_o conspicuous_a as_o a_o lampâ_n upon_o a_o candelstick_n as_o a_o city_n upon_o a_o mountain_n as_o a_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o sun_n why_o then_o do_v you_o say_v that_o she_o be_v so_o many_o year_n latent_fw-la and_o invisible_a that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v shewad_n that_o she_o be_v unknown_a and_o unheard_a of_o that_o she_o be_v not_o where_o external_a and_o visible_a that_o she_o be_v whole_o destroy_v with_o what_o modesty_n then_o can_v you_o say_v that_o protestant_n hold_v not_o any_o great_a invisibility_n or_o rather_o obscurity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a then_o that_o which_o the_o romanist_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v but_o in_o proof_n of_o this_o thesis_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o s._n augustine_n you_o say_v to_o we_o fin_n we_o pag._n 367._o fin_n you_o regard_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v sometime_o in_o lustre_n glorious_a as_o the_o sun_n so_o again_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o s._n ambrose_n sometime_o as_o the_o moon_n which_o have_v she_o increase_v and_o decrease_v yes_o we_o regard_v it_o well_o and_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v regard_v that_o although_o s._n augustine_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o her_o external_a lustre_n be_v sometime_o diminish_v by_o persecution_n and_o her_o glory_n obscure_v by_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o some_o of_o her_o child_n yet_o he_o frequent_o compare_v she_o to_o the_o sun_n and_o believe_v with_o the_o prophet_n 60.29_o prophet_n isa_n 60.29_o that_o her_o sun_n shall_v never_o set_v and_o her_o moon_n shall_v not_o be_v diminish_v and_o 48._o and_o ep._n 48._o that_o when_o by_o scandal_n her_o light_n be_v most_o obscure_v etiam_fw-la tunc_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la fortissimis_fw-la eminent_a even_o than_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o steedfast_a champion_n and_o in_o they_o remain_v resplendent_a and_o glorious_a display_v beam_n of_o light_n over_o the_o whole_a earth_n so_o far_o be_v s._n augustine_n from_o your_o absurd_a paradox_n of_o the_o invisibility_n &_o total_a decay_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n s._n ambrose_n compare_v she_o to_o the_o moon_n he_o declare_v say_v 2._o say_v l._n 4._o hexam_n c._n 2._o the_o church_n have_v her_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o of_o peace_n she_o seem_v to_o decay_v as_o the_o moon_n but_o decay_v not_o she_o may_v be_v shadow_v she_o can_v perish_v because_o she_o be_v diminish_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o some_o in_o persecution_n to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o confession_n of_o martyr_n and_o that_o be_v illustrate_v with_o trophy_n of_o the_o blood_n shed_v for_o christ_n she_o may_v diffuse_v great_a light_n of_o her_o devotion_n and_o faith_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o costerus_n castro_n lindanus_n and_o stapleton_n affirm_v that_o the_o arian_n heresy_n in_o a_o short_a time_n infect_v almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n so_o have_v lutheranism_n caluinianisme_n zue_v lianisme_n with_o other_o new_a sect_n spring_v from_o they_o in_o these_o late_a time_n infect_v many_o province_n of_o europe_n but_o therefore_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o those_o province_n invisible_a how_o then_o do_v you_o see_v catholic_n to_o persecute_v they_o to_o imprison_v they_o and_o even_o so_o &_o much_o more_o when_o the_o arian_n heresy_n be_v in_o the_o great_a ruff_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v every_o where_o still_o eminent_o visible_a as_o that_o very_a passage_n of_o liberius_n prove_v which_o here_o you_o produce_v for_o the_o contrary_a for_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n have_v by_o threat_n draw_v many_o bishop_n especial_o of_o the_o east_n to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o as_o theodoret_n out_o of_o his_o apology_n report_v 15._o report_v l._n 2._o histor_n c._n 15._o the_o rest_n that_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v either_o conceal_v themselves_o for_o fear_n or_o be_v send_v into_o banishment_n he_o call_v liberius_n unto_o he_o and_o urge_v he_o not_o to_o communicate_v with_o athanasius_n say_v he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o defend_v by_o none_o but_o by_o he_o liberius_n answer_v 16._o answer_v theod._n l._n 2._o hist._n c._n 16._o esto_fw-la quod_fw-la solus_fw-la sim_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v it_o that_o i_o be_o alone_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o therefore_o the_o worse_a for_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v but_o three_o child_n to_o resist_v the_o king_n commandment_n these_o three_o child_n be_v bring_v by_o nabuchodosor_n out_o of_o jury_n into_o babylon_n as_o then_o there_o be_v none_o in_o babylon_n to_o defend_v god_n cause_n but_o only_o those_o three_o so_o say_v liberius_n and_o out_o of_o he_o salmeron_n here_o object_v by_o you_o be_v it_o that_o i_o be_o now_o leave_v here_o alone_o to_o descend_v the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o therefore_o the_o worse_a this_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v then_o or_o may_v sometime_o be_v bring_v to_o so_o low_a a_o ebb_n that_o there_o be_v but_o three_o yea_o only_a one_o orthodox_n man_n remain_v but_o it_o be_v a_o ignorant_a mistake_n for_o albeit_o there_o be_v then_o in_o babylon_n three_o only_a child_n to_o resist_v nabuchodonosor_n yet_o in_o jury_n there_o be_v remain_v a_o numerous_a church_n of_o orthodox_n people_n and_o so_o likewise_o though_o there_o be_v then_o no_o other_o bishop_n present_a to_o withstand_v constantius_n yet_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o that_o time_n many_o catholic_a bishop_n renown_v for_o their_o learning_n and_o constancy_n and_o diverse_a of_o they_o then_o actual_o in_o banishment_n who_o restitution_n to_o their_o church_n liberius_n in_o that_o very_a dialogue_n often_o demand_v of_o constantius_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o beside_o many_o catholic_a bishop_n reckon_v by_o s._n athanasius_n 14.15.16_o athanasius_n apud_fw-la theod._n l._n 2._o hist._n c._n 14.15.16_o there_o live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n other_o most_o eminent_a prelate_n and_o doctor_n as_o saint_n hilary_n pacianus_n didymus_n titus_n bostrensis_n s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n optatus_n eusebius_n vercellensis_n s._n ephrem_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n s._n epiphanius_n s._n basil_n s._n gregory_n nyssen_n s._n ambrose_n and_o many_o other_o and_o as_o there_o be_v many_o catholic_a pastor_n so_o be_v there_o catholic_a people_n govern_v by_o they_o yea_o who_o know_v not_o that_o both_o the_o roman_a and_o all_o the_o western_a church_n at_o that_o time_n be_v full_a of_o orthodox_n pastor_n &_o people_n in_o so_o much_o that_o after_o the_o roman_a matron_n by_o advice_n of_o their_o husband_n 17._o husband_n theod._n ibid._n c._n 17._o have_v present_v themselves_o before_o constantius_n and_o obtain_v liberius_n his_o return_n from_o exile_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n send_v legate_n unto_o
he_o and_o to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n humble_o crave_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o communion_n and_o to_o declare_v themselves_o free_a from_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n with_o which_o they_o have_v be_v charge_v protest_a that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v otherwise_o than_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n do_v and_o that_o they_o have_v hold_v former_o do_v still_o hold_v and_o will_v ever_o hold_v till_o their_o last_o breath_n the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o whereupon_o liberius_n willing_o admit_v they_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o address_v a_o letter_n to_o fifty_o nine_o of_o they_o by_o name_n and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o general_a express_v the_o great_a joy_n he_o conceive_v to_o understand_v that_o they_o have_v always_o agree_v in_o faith_n with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o all_o the_o other_o western_a country_n for_o so_o be_v his_o word_n this_o be_v the_o story_n true_o set_v down_o what_o relief_n do_v you_o find_v here_o for_o your_o invisible_a church_n since_o in_o the_o very_a height_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n which_o be_v the_o great_a wain_n you_o can_v sinde_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n she_o abound_v and_o shine_v like_o a_o sun_n most_o glorious_o with_o orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n show_v we_o such_o a_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n or_o else_o confess_v the_o truth_n that_o you_o have_v no_o church_n before_o luther_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o 369._o we_o pag_n 369._o with_o how_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o obscurity_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v cover_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n &_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o rhemist_n who_o make_v whole_o against_o you_o for_o albeit_o they_o grant_v that_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o public_a seat_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o public_a exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a function_n nor_o public_a intercourse_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v not_o this_o day_n in_o cyprus_n nor_o in_o england_n yet_o there_o shall_v not_o want_v orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n remain_v in_o due_a obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o communicate_v with_o she_o not_o only_o in_o hart_n but_o practise_v the_o same_o in_o secret_a and_o make_v public_a profession_n thereof_o of_o if_o occasion_n require_v it_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rhemist_n and_o of_o all_o catholic_a writer_n wherefore_o as_o catholic_n be_v not_o in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n invisible_a nor_o yet_o so_o obscure_a but_o that_o their_o constaney_n be_v know_v and_o renown_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o likewise_o shall_v the_o faithful_a be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n nor_o do_v costerus_n ribera_n pererius_n acosta_n viegas_n or_o any_o of_o the_o father_n which_o you_o object_n 370._o object_n pag._n 370._o teach_v aught_o to_o the_o contrary_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n hilary_n which_o you_o object_n 3â8_n object_n pag._n 3â8_n s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v long_o since_o 48._o since_o ep._n 48._o for_o it_o be_v object_v to_o he_o by_o vincentius_n the_o rogatist_n of_o who_o spirit_n and_o belief_n you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v urge_v against_o we_o the_o same_o testimony_n he_o urge_v against_o s._n augustine_n who_o not_o only_o in_o that_o place_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v teach_v that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o as_o it_o be_v shadow_v with_o cloud_n by_o the_o multitude_n of_o scandal_n that_o be_v persecution_n when_o sinner_n bend_v their_o bow_n to_o wound_v she_o in_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o moon_n yet_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o constant_a professor_n but_o also_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n 8._o god_n l._n 20._o c._n 8._o speak_v profess_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n he_o say_v she_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o obscure_v that_o either_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o find_v she_o or_o when_o he_o have_v find_v she_o be_v able_a with_o his_o persecution_n to_o overthrow_v she_o but_o that_o even_o then_o faithful_a parent_n shall_v with_o great_a devotion_n procure_v baptism_n for_o their_o child_n &_o that_o as_o many_o shall_v fall_v from_o the_o church_n so_o other_o shall_v stand_v constant_a and_o other_o shall_v enter_v a_o new_a which_o before_o be_v out_o of_o she_o and_o in_o particular_a the_o jew_n who_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o christ_n 29._o christ_n s._n aug._n ibid._n c._n 29._o and_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o s._n gregory_n ezechiel_n gregory_n hom._n 12._o in_o ezechiel_n who_o you_o mis-cite_a 370._o mis-cite_a pag._n 370._o for_o the_o word_n you_o object_n out_o of_o his_o moral_n on_o job_n be_v not_o there_o to_o be_v find_v sect_n iu._n what_o cause_n may_v suffice_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n your_o five_o thesis_n be_v 370._o be_v pag._n 370._o all_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v for_o every_o unsoundnesse_n in_o either_o manner_n worship_n or_o doctrine_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o thesis_n we_o agree_v with_o you_o but_o you_o agree_v not_o with_o yourself_o for_o before_o you_o tell_v we_o 11.12_o we_o pag._n 11.12_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o every_o part_n perfect_a and_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n but_o here_o you_o say_v 371._o say_v pag_n 371._o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v find_v any_o one_o example_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n it_o scarce_o any_o particular_a church_n can_v be_v find_v consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n how_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n for_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n again_o here_o you_o inveigh_v against_o the_o separatist_n for_o divide_v themselves_o from_o you_o for_o only_a scandal_n take_v at_o the_o wicked_a life_n of_o your_o professor_n may_v not_o we_o then_o just_o except_o against_o you_o for_o object_v so_o often_o the_o vice_n of_o some_o few_o pope_n to_o make_v your_o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n more_o justifiable_a the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n be_v false_a for_o no_o worship_n no_o rite_n or_o ceremony_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n allow_v or_o permit_v to_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o in_o any_o part_n of_o their_o service_n be_v unsound_a and_o therefore_o as_o such_o difference_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n for_o one_o particular_a church_n to_o separate_v itself_o from_o other_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o a_o particular_a church_n use_v any_o ecclesiastical_a observation_n or_o ceremony_n disallow_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n that_o worship_n be_v unsound_a and_o such_o a_o church_n be_v schismatical_a and_o to_o be_v forsake_v and_o if_o it_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o that_o schism_n become_v heretical_a so_o many_o of_o the_o asian_a church_n persist_v obstinate_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o jewish_a custom_n after_o the_o prohibition_n of_o pius_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v just_o condemn_v and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o victor_n a_o boly_n pope_n and_o martyr_n and_o his_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o many_o other_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o observer_n of_o that_o custom_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v judge_v heretic_n and_o register_v as_o such_o under_o the_o name_n of_o quartadecimani_fw-la by_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o have_v make_v catalogue_n of_o heresy_n the_o three_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n that_o all_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v in_o some_o point_n as_o the_o corinthian_n do_v in_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o galatian_n in_o teach_v a_o necessary_a observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n together_o with_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o s._n paul_n 1.2_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 1.2_o galat._n 1.2_o call_v they_o both_o church_n and_o church_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v reform_v and_o be_v admonish_v of_o their_o error_n to_o abandon_v it_o and_o obey_v the_o truth_n but_o not_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v and_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o truth_n sufficient_o propose_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a all_o this_o you_o allow_v as_o true_a doctrine_n take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n what_o
therefore_o to_o be_v contemn_v as_o be_v admit_v but_o of_o late_a which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o false_a translation_n but_o a_o manifest_a pervert_v of_o the_o sense_n for_o castro_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o lawfulness_n of_o grant_v indulgence_n but_o de_fw-la earum_fw-la usu_fw-la of_o the_o use_n of_o they_o which_o therefore_o in_o your_o english_a you_n cunning_o omit_v that_o ouâ_n of_o he_o you_o may_v prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o they_o to_o be_v new_a yea_o and_o concern_v the_o very_a use_n of_o they_o he_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v most_o ancient_a by_o the_o same_o argument_n roffensis_n before_o he_o have_v do_v conclude_v that_o you_o and_o all_o other_o which_o contemn_v a_o thing_n practise_v so_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o establish_v by_o general_a counsel_n be_v just_o account_v heretic_n so_o far_o be_v castro_n from_o favour_v luther_n cause_n the_o three_o author_n be_v bellarmine_n out_o of_o who_o you_o cite_v these_o word_n 385._o word_n pag._n 385._o thesaurus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la est_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la indulgentiarum_fw-la which_o word_n you_o english_a thus_o the_o ground_n of_o indulgence_n be_v the_o spiritual_a treasury_n of_o work_n consist_v in_o the_o satisfactory_a and_o meritorious_a work_n of_o supererogation_n do_v by_o the_o faithful_a which_o treasury_n to_o have_v be_v ancient_o want_v you_o prove_v also_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n set_v down_o these_o word_n as_o he_o hoc_fw-la caruisse_fw-la dicunt_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la doctores_fw-la lovanienses_n this_o your_o doctor_n of_o louvain_n and_o some_o schoolman_n as_o you_o know_v affirm_v be_v ancient_o want_v in_o the_o church_n so_o you_o and_o then_o you_o tell_v we_o ibid._n we_o ibid._n out_o of_o suarez_n who_o those_o school_n man_n be_v namely_o mayzo_n and_o durandus_fw-la in_o this_o short_a passage_n of_o you_o there_o be_v almost_o as_o many_o untruth_n and_o falsification_n as_o word_n for_o first_o the_o latin_a word_n be_v not_o bellarmine_n but_o your_o own_o father_v on_o he_o and_o so_o also_o be_v the_o english_a which_o nevertheless_o you_o set_v down_o in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o he_o &_o not_o only_o disagree_v from_o the_o latin_a but_o contain_v false_a doctrine_n repugnant_a to_o all_o catholic_a divine_n and_o in_o particular_a to_o bellarmine_n who_o in_o that_o very_a place_n 2._o place_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr indulg_n c._n 2._o proposit_v 2._o teach_v that_o meritorious_a work_n as_o such_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o other_o nor_o belong_v to_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o as_o satisfactory_a 3._o you_o falsify_v make_v bellarmine_n to_o limit_v the_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n to_o work_n of_o supererogation_n only_o which_o be_v ignorant_o speak_v and_o not_o teach_v by_o bellarmine_n nor_o any_o catholic_a divine_a 4._o you_o father_n on_o he_o false_o those_o last_o word_n hoc_fw-la thesauro_fw-la caruisse_fw-la dicunt_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la doctores_fw-la lovanienses_n for_o they_o be_v not_o he_o nor_o do_v he_o attribute_v any_o such_o doctrine_n to_o the_o divines_n of_o louvain_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o once_o name_v they_o in_o all_o that_o chapter_n be_v it_o not_o then_o great_a perfidiousness_n so_o to_o abuse_v and_o falsify_v both_o he_o and_o they_o nor_o be_v your_o deal_n better_a with_o suarez_n for_o to_o omit_v that_o in_o the_o place_n you_o cite_v he_o treat_v of_o no_o such_o matter_n nether_a he_o nor_o bellarmine_n ever_o say_v that_o duraud_n deny_v this_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o that_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o consist_v of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o the_o saint_n which_o yet_o he_o speak_v by_o way_n of_o doubt_n &_o theological_a dispute_n rather_o than_o affirmative_o for_o come_v to_o deliver_v his_o own_o opinion_n he_o say_v plain_o and_o resolute_o 3._o resolute_o 4._o dist_n 20._o q._n 3._o est_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n who_o suffer_v far_o great_a torment_n than_o their_o sin_n deserve_v and_o therefore_o the_o church_n out_o of_o this_o treasure_n may_v communicate_v to_o one_o or_o more_o so_o much_o as_o may_v suffice_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n either_o in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a according_a as_o the_o church_n shall_v please_v to_o communicate_v this_o treasure_n more_o or_o less_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n communicate_v to_o we_o to_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n wherefore_o indulgence_n avail_v by_o way_n of_o payment_n for_o so_o much_o as_o by_o christ_n &_o his_o saint_n the_o pain_n to_o which_o we_o be_v liable_a be_v pay_v but_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v that_o the_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n only_o that_o will_v avail_v you_o nothing_o for_o he_o defend_v indulgence_n which_o you_o deny_v and_o if_o he_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n he_o err_v not_o with_o obstinacy_n as_o you_o do_v but_o submit_v all_o his_o work_n to_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a roman_n church_n as_o you_o have_v read_v in_o bellarmine_n but_o conceal_v it_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o the_o great_a cloud_n of_o witness_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v to_o justify_v luther_n doctrine_n against_o indulgence_n be_v either_o of_o heretic_n or_o of_o catholic_n in_o work_n prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n or_o if_o not_o prohibit_v abuse_v and_o falsify_v by_o you_o sect_n x._o the_o cause_n give_v by_o doctor_n morton_n in_o excuse_n of_o luther_n departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o cause_n you_o have_v devise_v to_o justify_v luther_n departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v partly_o impious_a partly_o false_a and_o imposterous_a impious_a as_o your_o except_v against_o the_o mass_n 387._o mass_n pag._n 387._o to_o which_o luther_n be_v persuade_v by_o the_o devil_n call_v it_o idolatry_n as_o you_o do_v and_o not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v your_o example_n of_o firmilianus_n 388._o firmilianus_n pag._n 388._o who_o be_v for_o the_o time_n a_o obstinate_a mantainer_n of_o rebaptisation_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o stephen_n a_o holy_a pope_n and_o notwithstanding_o that_o stephen_n sentence_n be_v embrace_v by_o all_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o firmilianus_n condemn_v by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a and_o ever_o since_o esteem_v heretical_a not_o only_o by_o catholic_n but_o also_o by_o protestant_n you_o shame_v not_o to_o justify_v firmilianus_n ibid._n firmilianus_n ibid._n and_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v the_o same_o heresy_n with_o he_o &_o to_o condemn_v pope_n stephen_n as_o a_o schismatic_n for_o excommunicate_v he_o such_o example_n i_o confess_v you_o may_v find_v to_o defend_v luther_n departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o you_o allege_v 387._o allege_v pag._n 387._o be_v false_a and_o imposterous_a as_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n mantain_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o satanical_a doctrine_n that_o she_o blaspheme_v the_o truth_n and_o tyrannical_o force_v man_n to_o subscribe_v which_o as_o they_o be_v false_a and_o slanderous_a accusation_n so_o you_o utter_v they_o gratis_o and_o without_o any_o proof_n at_o all_o and_o say_v nothing_o to_o justify_v luther_n but_o what_o a_o donatist_n a_o arian_n or_o any_o other_o heretic_n never_o so_o blasphemous_a will_v say_v for_o himself_o &_o may_v with_o as_o good_a ground_n as_o luther_n or_o you_o for_o he_o but_o you_o allege_v 389._o allege_v pag._n 389._o cassander_n who_o you_o call_v our_o cassander_n notwithstanding_o that_o heretofore_o you_o have_v have_v a_o double_a admonition_n 2._o admonition_n see_v above_o chap._n 2._o that_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a heretic_n prima_fw-la classis_fw-la who_o work_n be_v condemn_v and_o prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n be_v of_o no_o more_o authority_n with_o we_o than_o your_o grand_a imposture_n and_o not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v your_o other_o example_n of_o stephen_n gardiner_n b._n of_o winchester_n as_o already_o have_v be_v show_v ibid._n show_v ibid._n and_o as_o little_a to_o your_o purpose_n be_v another_o example_n which_o here_o you_o add_v 392._o add_v pag._n 392._o of_o a_o epistle_n of_o robert_n grosthead_n b._n of_o lincoln_n take_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o matthew_n paris_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o corrupt_o by_o english_a protestant_n and_o then_o by_o the_o tigurine_a lutheran_n who_o have_v add_v many_o thing_n both_o in_o their_o marginal_a note_n and_o in_o the_o text_n in_o self_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n scriptor_n church_n see_v bellar._n l._n the_o scriptor_n out_o of_o this_o epistle_n of_o grosthead_n to_o innocentius_n the_o four_o you_o object_n a_o long_a
passage_n in_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v in_o most_o effectual_a word_n his_o belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n for_o in_o the_o very_a first_o word_n of_o his_o epistle_n he_o say_v be_v it_o know_v to_o your_o wisdom_n that_o i_o obey_v the_o apostolic_a mandate_n with_o filial_a affection_n devout_o &_o reverent_o and_o that_o i_o make_v resistance_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o the_o apostolic_a mandate_n zeal_v the_o honour_n of_o my_o father_n for_o to_o both_o i_o be_o bind_v ex_fw-la divino_fw-la mandato_fw-la by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o the_o apostolic_a mandate_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o other_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n master_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o place_n and_o person_n our_o lord_n the_o pope_n chief_o hold_v in_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n a_o judicious_a reader_n will_v think_v it_o a_o hard_a matter_n for_o any_o man_n out_o of_o these_o word_n and_o doctrine_n of_o grosthead_n to_o frame_v a_o argument_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o be_v you_o so_o witty_a that_o you_o have_v do_v it_o but_o by_o what_o be_v by_o cut_v and_o mangle_v the_o bishop_n word_n as_o the_o reader_n will_v see_v if_o he_o please_v to_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o latin_a set_v down_o in_o your_o margin_n and_o even_o that_o latin_a mangle_v and_o falsify_v as_o it_o be_v you_o think_v best_a not_o to_o english_a because_o it_o will_v have_v give_v light_a to_o a_o judicious_a reader_n to_o see_v your_o deal_n what_o you_o add_v 394._o add_v pag._n 394._o of_o the_o bishop_n not_o receive_v a_o provision_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n make_v nothing_o for_o you_o for_o by_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o his_o epistle_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o judge_v the_o provision_n to_o be_v procure_v fraudulent_o by_o surreption_n &_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v a_o true_a mandate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o upon_o that_o ground_n he_o make_v resistance_n unto_o it_o which_o the_o civil_a etsi_fw-la civil_a cod._n si_fw-mi cont_n ius_o l._n etsi_fw-la &_o canon_n law_n dilectus_fw-la law_n de_fw-fr rescript_n c._n dilectus_fw-la in_o such_o case_n declare_v to_o be_v lawful_a without_o any_o impeachment_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect_n xi_o whether_o protestant_n have_v any_o professor_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o way_n more_o expedite_a or_o effectual_a to_o convince_v heretic_n to_o be_v such_o &_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v profane_a novelty_n then_o to_o require_v of_o they_o a_o catalogue_n of_o primitive_a father_n and_o learned_a man_n which_o have_v agree_v with_o they_o and_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o all_o those_o point_n in_o which_o they_o dissent_v from_o she_o as_o contrary_o there_o be_v no_o way_n more_o effectual_a for_o a_o orthodox_n man_n to_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v such_o then_o to_o show_v that_o the_o father_n &_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n in_o all_o age_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v profess_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n he_o profess_v and_o teach_v to_o this_o trial_n s._n athanasius_n challenge_v the_o arian_n behold_v say_v he_o to_o they_o euseb_n they_o in_o decret_a nic._n syn._n cont_n euseb_n we_o have_v prove_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from-father_n to_o son_n you_o new_a jew_n you_o child_n of_o caiphas_n what_o predecessor_n of_o your_o name_n can_v you_o show_v to_o the_o same_o trial_n that_o most_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n provoke_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n for_o as_o sozomen_n record_v 11._o record_v l._n 7._o c._n 11._o have_v call_v together_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o novatians_n arian_n and_o macedonian_n he_o demand_v of_o they_o whether_o they_o think_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o govern_v the_o church_n before_o those_o dissension_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n fall_v out_o be_v holy_a and_o apostolical_a man_n whether_o they_o do_v allow_v of_o their_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o will_v accept_v of_o they_o as_o of_o competent_a judge_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o end_v of_o all_o controversy_n those_o heretic_n high_o praise_v the_o doctrine_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n but_o yet_o can_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o to_o have_v the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n produce_v and_o their_o own_o doctrine_n try_v by_o they_o whereupon_o theodosius_n forbid_v they_o all_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o inflict_v other_o punishment_n upon_o they_o with_o he_o accord_v herein_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n publish_v by_o a_o especial_a law_n 6._o law_n l._n 5._o &_o 6._o that_o to_o confute_v the_o lie_n of_o impious_a heretic_n and_o repress_v the_o madness_n of_o those_o that_o give_v assent_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o manifest_v unto_o all_o what_o the_o most_o holy_a priest_n of_o god_n have_v teach_v and_o to_o follow_v they_o how_o often_o do_v s._n augustine_n stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pelagian_o 12._o pelagian_o scout_v jul._n pelag._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o l._n 2._o versus_fw-la fin_n l._n 5._o c._n 17._o &_o count_v dvas_fw-la ep._n pelag._n l._n 4._o c._n 12._o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o famous_a bishop_n and_o doctor_n both_o of_o the_o east_n &_o west_n specify_v they_o by_o their_o name_n sometime_o twelve_o sometime_o fourteen_o together_o &_o add_v to_o they_o the_o rest_n in_o general_n the_o same_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v use_v by_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a 97._o great_a ep._n 97._o when_o have_v urge_v against_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n athanasius_n hilary_n ambrose_n and_o chrysostome_n theophilus_n alexandrinus_n basil_n the_o great_a and_o cyril_n he_o conclude_v thus_o to_o the_o emperor_n to_o who_o he_o write_v to_o these_o testimony_n if_o you_o vouchsafe_v to_o attend_v you_o shall_v find_v that_o we_o teach_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o what_o our_o holy_a father_n have_v teach_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o no_o man_n dissent_v from_o they_o but_o impious_a heretic_n last_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o argue_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n be_v use_v in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n against_o the_o monothelite_n in_o the_o second_o of_o nice_a against_o the_o image-breaker_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n to_o this_o trial_n learned_a catholic_n have_v often_o challenge_v the_o sectary_n of_o this_o age_n &_o to_o that_o end_n have_v set_v forth_o catalogue_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a doctor_n of_o god_n church_n from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o christ_n show_v they_o to_o have_v be_v member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o have_v believe_v and_o teach_v the_o now_o roman_a faith_n not_o only_o in_o the_o general_a head_n wherein_o protestant_n agree_v with_o we_o but_o also_o in_o each_o of_o the_o several_a point_n in_o which_o they_o dissent_v from_o we_o &_o to_o have_v hold_v they_o to_o be_v heretical_a and_o confute_v they_o as_o such_o even_o as_o we_o do_v allege_v their_o testimony_n at_o this_o day_n against_o protestant_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o jodocus_n coccius_n a_o german_n who_o as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o first_o tome_n be_v in_o his_o youth_n a_o lutheran_n afterward_o partly_o by_o frequent_v the_o sermon_n of_o catholic_a preacher_n partly_o by_o hear_v disputation_n in_o school_n partly_o by_o observe_v the_o marvellous_a concord_n of_o catholics_n and_o the_o fatal_a discord_n of_o protestant_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n partly_o by_o consider_v serious_o and_o weigh_v with_o himself_o that_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n be_v confine_v to_o a_o few_o province_n and_o not_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 49._o christ_n isa_n 49._o be_v prophesy_v to_o be_v and_o that_o they_o want_v succession_n and_o continuance_n be_v new_o spring_v up_o and_o last_o by_o a_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o ancient_a father_n who_o be_v find_v to_o agree_v whole_o with_o we_o and_o dissent_v from_o protestant_n abandon_v they_o and_o abiur_v their_o doctrine_n east_n himself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o catholic_a mother_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o aswell_o for_o the_o confusion_n of_o heretic_n &_o confirmation_n of_o catholic_n as_o also_o to_o yield_v unto_o all_o man_n a_o reason_n of_o his_o faith_n he_o undertake_v a_o immense_a labour_n in_o which_o he_o spend_v 24._o year_n of_o read_v the_o
of_o the_o east_n and_o many_o of_o the_o west_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n &_o so_o much_o the_o more_o evident_a the_o great_a the_o persecution_n and_o the_o more_o and_o long_o the_o schism_n have_v be_v that_o she_o be_v the_o impregnable_a rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n can_v overthrow_v sect_n viii_o other_o argument_n out_o of_o s._n paul_n and_o other_o catholic_a author_n answer_v s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n say_v 1.13_o say_v rom._n 1.13_o i_o have_v often_o purpose_v to_o come_v unto_o you_o that_o i_o may_v have_v some_o fruit_n in_o you_o as_o also_o in_o the_o other_o gentile_n tolet_n 22._o tolet_n in_o eum_fw-la loc_fw-la annot._fw-la 22._o upon_o these_o word_n observe_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v indifferent_a to_o all_o and_o that_o howbeit_o the_o roman_n be_v more_o eminent_a than_o other_o nation_n and_o have_v the_o primacy_n yet_o in_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o business_n belong_v to_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n equal_v other_o with_o they_o these_o word_n of_o tolet_n you_o object_n 70._o object_n pag_n 70._o but_o to_o what_o end_n i_o know_v not_o for_o tolet_n declare_v the_o reason_n why_o s._n paul_n equal_v other_o nation_n with_o the_o roman_n in_o preach_v to_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o procure_v their_o salvation_n to_o be_v because_o as_o christ_n find_v all_o sinner_n and_o die_v for_o all_o so_o he_o call_v all_o and_o receave_v they_o from_o whence_o soever_o they_o come_v if_o you_o have_v set_v down_o these_o word_n of_o tolet_n you_o have_v discover_v that_o to_o infer_v either_o from_o he_o or_o s._n paul_n word_n the_o equality_n of_o other_o church_n with_o the_o roman_a in_o matter_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v a_o senseless_a illation_n for_o by_o the_o same_o consequence_n you_o may_v infer_v that_o all_o diocesan_n in_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n be_v equal_a with_o their_o bishop_n and_o all_o subject_n in_o temporal_a power_n with_o their_o prince_n because_o christ_n have_v shed_v his_o blood_n equal_o for_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o be_v equal_o dear_a to_o he_o and_o their_o salvation_n ought_v with_o all_o indifferency_n to_o be_v procure_v by_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o aswell_o to_o the_o least_o as_o to_o the_o great_a to_o the_o poor_a as_o to_o the_o rich_a 2._o no_o less_o impertinent_o you_o object_v other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n 11.19_o apostle_n rom._n 11.19_o in_o which_o as_o you_o confess_v he_o exhort_v not_o the_o roman_n in_o particular_a but_o all_o the_o convert_v gentile_n in_o general_n not_o to_o be_v overwise_a but_o to_o fear_v lest_o they_o also_o be_v break_v off_o by_o infidelity_n as_o the_o jew_n be_v for_o these_o word_n show_v that_o no_o man_n have_v certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v as_o protestant_n vayn_o presume_v themselves_o to_o have_v but_o that_o all_o aught_o to_o live_v in_o fear_n lest_o they_o fall_v into_o infidelity_n or_o other_o sin_n which_o fear_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o have_v as_o well_o as_o other_o nation_n but_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v teach_v heretical_a doctrine_n ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la or_o that_o the_o whole_a roman_a church_n may_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n nether_a be_v it_o s._n paul_n meaning_n nor_o any_o interpreter_n ever_o expound_v so_o 3._o as_o little_a to_o your_o purpose_n it_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n say_v 1.11_o say_v rom._n 1.11_o to_o the_o roman_n i_o desire_v to_o see_v you_o that_o i_o may_v impart_v unto_o you_o some_o spiritual_a grace_n to_o confirm_v you_o for_o thereby_o as_o s._n hierome_n or_o whosoever_o be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o commentary_n theodoret_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o s._n thomas_n expound_v locum_fw-la expound_v in_o eum_fw-la locum_fw-la he_o show_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o faith_n already_o from_o s._n peter_n because_o say_v theodoret_n the_o great_a peter_n have_v already_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n therefore_o s._n paul_n necessary_o add_v to_o confirm_v you_o and_o s._n hierome_n paul_n say_v he_o will_v confirm_v the_o roman_n already_o belleeve_v not_o that_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o faith_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o peter_n but_o that_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o witness_n and_o doctrine_n of_o two_o apostle_n wherefore_o s._n paul_n desire_v to_o see_v they_o to_o confirm_v they_o that_o be_v as_o he_o himself_o declare_v to_o the_o end_n both_o he_o &_o they_o may_v receive_v mutual_a comfort_n from_o each_o other_o they_o by_o his_o faith_n and_o he_o by_o they_o what_o make_v this_o against_o the_o primacy_n of_o s._n peter_n or_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o you_o object_n 72_o object_n pag._n 72_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o s._n peter_n &_o paul_n be_v co-sounders_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o do_v so_o &_o it_o be_v true_a but_o yet_o so_o that_o s._n peter_n first_o plant_v that_o church_n &_o s._n paul_n come_v not_o to_o rome_n till_o many_o year_n after_o to_o assist_v he_o for_o which_o cause_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o plant_n of_o christian_a religion_n there_o be_v absolute_o attribute_v to_o s._n peter_n our_o will_n be_v say_v the_o godly_a emperor_n theodosius_n and_o gratian_n 1._o gratian_n cod._n tit_n 1._o l._n 1._o that_o all_o the_o people_n rule_v by_o the_o empire_n of_o our_o clemency_n shall_v live_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n which_o the_o divine_a apostle_n peter_n give_v to_o the_o roman_n as_o the_o religion_n insinuate_v by_o he_o until_o this_o present_a witness_v and_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o high_a priest_n damasus_n follow_v wherefore_o when_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n be_v co-founder_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o say_v it_o not_o to_o equal_v they_o in_o the_o foundation_n and_o much_o less_o in_o authority_n for_o in_o that_o very_a place_n 27._o place_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr pout_v c._n 27._o he_o learned_o prove_v that_o in_o authority_n s._n peter_n far_o exceed_v s._n paul_n 5._o you_o object_n 72._o object_n pag._n 72._o out_o of_o lorinus_n that_o s._n epiphanius_n call_v both_o peter_n and_o paul_n bishop_n of_o rome_n true_a but_o s._n paul_n episcopal_a authority_n be_v only_o transient_a he_o have_v no_o episcopal_a chair_n at_o rome_n as_o s._n peter_n have_v and_o therefore_o lorinus_n say_v that_o s._n epiphanius_n call_v s._n paul_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o because_o he_o exercise_v the_o episcopal_a function_n there_o as_o he_o may_v do_v in_o any_o other_o place_n of_o the_o world_n this_o explication_n content_v you_o not_o and_o therefore_o you_o say_v mark_fw-mi say_v pag._n 72._o mark_fw-mi it_o be_v confute_v in_o the_o next_o testimony_n and_o in_o the_o challenge_n follow_v but_o you_o break_v promise_n for_o there_o you_o nether_a confute_v it_o nor_o mention_v it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o it_o be_v manifest_a for_o no_o man_n ever_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n have_v a_o episcopal_a chair_n at_o rome_n as_o s._n peter_n have_v no_o do_v s._n irenaeus_n tertullian_n eusebius_n optatus_n s._n augustine_n s._n epiphanius_n who_o you_o object_n make_v catalogue_n of_o all_o the_o roman_a bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n till_o their_o time_n nor_o any_o other_o writer_n reckon_v s._n paul_n as_o one_o of_o they_o 6._o you_o object_n 72._o object_n pag._n 72._o that_o the_o authority_n of_o both_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o pope_n breve_n for_o confirmation_n of_o papal_a ordinance_n that_o both_o have_v their_o image_n engrave_v in_o the_o pope_n bull_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o paul_n sometime_o have_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o peter_n as_o well_o as_o other_o while_n peter_n of_o paul_n you_o often_o borrow_v argument_n out_o of_o catholic_a author_n and_o conceal_v their_o answer_n this_o you_o borrow_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n 27._o bellarmine_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la poât_fw-la c._n 27._o who_o large_o and_o learned_o answer_v give_v three_o different_a solution_n unto_o it_o to_o he_o i_o remit_v the_o reader_n only_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o word_n which_o you_o set_v down_o in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o of_o peterius_n be_v not_o he_o but_o your_o own_o for_o though_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n &_o out_o of_o a_o place_n of_o virgil_n that_o apud_fw-la homines_fw-la among_o man_n the_o right_a hand_n be_v the_o better_a and_o more_o honourable_a yet_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o among_o all_o people_n save_v the_o persian_n as_o you_o by_o add_v to_o his_o word_n this_o particle_n all_o make_v he_o to_o say_v for_o he_o acknowledge_v and_o bellarmine_n out_o of_o
work_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o out_o of_o they_o have_v in_o two_o large_a volume_n which_o he_o entitle_v thesaurus_fw-la catholicus_n demonstrate_v most_o exact_o that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n &_o detest_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o heretical_a no_o less_o than_o at_o this_o day_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v the_o like_a have_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o most_o eminent_a cardinal_n baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n the_o one_o in_o his_o annal_n the_o other_o in_o his_o learned_a volume_n of_o controversy_n the_o like_a pain_n have_v be_v take_v by_o doctor_n sanders_n in_o his_o monarchia_fw-la visibilis_fw-la by_o jacobus_n gaulterius_fw-la in_o his_o tabula_fw-la chronographica_fw-la against_o the_o french_a huguenot_n and_o by_o doctor_n norrice_n in_o his_o antidote_n &_o appendix_n against_o english_a protestant_n the_o like_a have_v other_o learned_a writer_n do_v out_o of_o the_o work_n of_o diverse_a ancient_a father_n in_o particular_a theodorus_n petretus_n out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n leo_n s._n gregory_n and_o s._n bernard_n joannes_n nopelius_n out_o of_o s._n ambrose_n cornelius_n schultingus_n out_o of_o s._n hierome_n and_o hieronymus_n torrensis_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n intitul_a their_o work_n the_o confession_n of_o those_o father_n and_o convince_a clear_o in_o they_o that_o they_o be_v all_o roman_a catholic_n and_o in_o all_o point_n of_o the_o same_o belief_n we_o profess_v at_o this_o day_n this_o it_o be_v which_o we_o so_o often_o require_v of_o protestant_n a_o catalogue_n of_o learned_a man_n who_o in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n have_v agree_v with_o they_o and_o dissent_v from_o we_o in_o all_o those_o tenet_n which_o they_o maintain_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o now_o roman_a church_n this_o the_o best_a learned_a protestant_n know_v they_o can_v not_o perform_v and_o therefore_o be_v enforce_v to_o say_v as_o you_o have_v hear_v 3._o hear_v see_v here_o above_o sect_n 3._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v altogether_o invisible_a yea_o for_o many_o age_n utter_o perish_v &_o extinguish_v but_o you_o with_o other_o late_a english_a protestant_n ashamed_a of_o so_o faithless_a a_o paradox_n maintain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o you_o hold_v to_o be_v you_o be_v never_o whole_o error_n in_o the_o print_n to_o be_v correct_v in_o the_o text._n pag._n 13._o line_n 11._o ermodius_n read_v ennodius_n pag._n 14._o lin_v 37._o true_a read_v the_o true_a pag._n 18._o lin_v 21._o then_o read_v man_n ibid._n lin_v 24._o which_o read_v with_o ibid._n lin_v 37._o also_o read_v they_o also_o pag._n 21._o l._n 28._o his_o read_n if_o he_o pag._n 24._o lin_v 15._o nouthe_n read_v month_n pag._n 29._o l._n 38._o nicolaus_n augustus_n read_v jacobus_n augustus_n pag._n 50._o l._n 31._o be_v read_v bring_v pag._n 65._o l._n 10._o church_n read_v church_n pag._n 68_o l._n 19_o misplace_v read_v misconstrue_v pag._n 75._o l._n 37.38_o to_o the_o thing_n read_v of_o the_o thing_n pag._n 78._o l._n 3._o ingenious_o read_v ingenuous_o pag._n 80._o l._n 11._o misbelieve_v read_v misbelief_n pag._n 94._o l._n 15._o this_o read_v he_o pag._n 98._o l._n 19_o odorn_v read_v adorn_v pag._n 106._o l._n 33._o a_o great_a non_fw-fr seq_fw-fr read_v as_o great_a a_o non_fw-fr seq_fw-fr pag._n 108._o l._n 13._o first_o of_o read_v first_o bishop_n of_o pag._n 110._o l._n 23._o the_o three_o read_v the_o first_o pag._n 112._o l._n 35._o which_o read_v with_o pag._n 118._o l._n 38._o pivat_a read_v private_a pag._n 125._o l._n 14._o augustine_n to_o zozimus_n read_v aug._n to_o bonifacius_n pag._n 134._o l._n 38._o samleron_n read_v salmeron_n pag._n 141._o l._n 20._o first_o time_n to_o jerusalem_n read_v the_o first_o time_n from_o antioch_n to_o jerusalem_n pag._n 148._o l._n 37._o he_o read_v they_o pag._n 153._o l._n 27._o contention_n read_v contentious_a pag._n 164._o l._n 18._o no_o read_v nor_o pag._n 169._o l._n 6._o but_o read_v out_o pag._n 169._o l._n 12._o the_o read_v she_o pag._n 171._o l._n 10._o christian_n read_v christian_n pag._n 178._o l._n 19_o blot_n out_o k_n &_o put_v a_o *_o in_o place_n of_o it_o and_o in_o the_o margin_n over_o against_o it_o read_v thus_o *_o apud_fw-la vincent_n lyrin_fw-mi c._n 26._o pag._n 179._o l._n 13._o who_o read_v when_o pag._n 184._o l._n 25._o speak_v read_v speak_v pag._n 188._o in_o the_o 7._o line_n add_v k_n correspond_v to_o the_o margin_n pag._n 189._o l._n 36._o say_v he_o read_v say_v he_o epist_n 48._o pag._n 190._o l._n 2._o present_a law_n read_v present_a emperor_n pag._n 191._o confired_a read_v consider_v pag._n 202._o l._n 27._o which_o read_v with_o pag._n 325._o you_o read_v your_o pag._n 334._o l._n 5._o of_o mediocrity_n read_v of_o our_o mediocrity_n pag._n 338._o l._n 23._o second_o epistle_n read_v three_o epistle_n pag._n 349._o l._n 31._o out_o read_v your_o pag._n 372._o l._n 30._o the_o patriarch_n read_v their_o patriarch_n pag._n 373._o l._n 13._o the_o 150._o read_v that_o the_o 150._o pag._n 374._o l._n 26._o feud_n read_v send_v pag._n 380._o l._n 28._o fovor_v read_v fovor_v pag._n 389._o l._n 6._o defaining_a read_v defame_v pag._n 399._o l._n 10._o nistaken_v read_v mistake_v pag._n 407._o l._n 7._o retraction_n read_v retractation_n pag._n 419._o l._n 16._o epistle_n read_v epistle_n pag._n 425._o l._n 36._o this_o very_a point_n read_v this_o the_o very_a point_n pag._n 428._o l._n 10._o as_o the_o read_v as_o of_o the._n pag._n 429._o l._n 3._o have_v notice_n read_v have_v have_v notice_n pag._n 431._o l._n 1._o bishop_n read_z bishop_n pag._n 436._o over_o against_o the_o 18._o line_n add_v in_o the_o margin_n council_n ephes_n to_o 2._o c._n 4._o in_o append_v pag._n 439._o l._n 6._o which_o read_v what_o pag_n 493._o l._n 7._o deal_n and._n pag_n 442._o l._n 31._o above_o read_v about_o pag._n 444._o falsify_v read_v falsity_n pag._n 457._o l._n 21._o prebition_n read_v prebibition_n pag._n 458._o l_o 4._o object_n read_v abject_a pag._n 466._o l._n 3._o authority_n read_v authority_n pag._n 470._o l._n 34._o as_o socrates_n read_v as_o euagrius_n pag._n 475._o l._n 2._o our_o read_n your_o pag._n 476._o l._n 38_o lawyer_n read_v lawyer_n pag._n 480._o l._n 33._o for_o leo_n de_fw-fr castro_n read_v and_o leo_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 493._o over_o against_o live_v 32._o add_v in_o the_o margin_n anselm_n l._n the_o ferment_n &_o azim_n init_fw-la pag._n 499._o l._n 15._o noly_a read_v only_o pag._n 502._o l._n 3._o apostolical_a chair_n read_v apostolical_a charge_n pag._n 514._o l._n 29._o which_o some_o read_v which_o though_o some_o pag._n 516._o l._n 29._o pilie_o read_v pily_o pag._n 519._o l._n 3._o convince_a read_v continue_v ibid._n l._n 12._o do_v not_o you_o read_v do_v not_o they_o pag._n 521._o l_o 20._o with_o read_v without_o pag._n 528._o l._n 17._o undertake_v read_v undertake_v pag._n 538._o l._n 21._o but_o away_o read_v put_v away_o ibid._n l._n 25._o his_o state_n read_v his_o seat_n pag_n 544._o l._n 26._o sufficient_a read_v insufficient_a pag._n 567._o l._n 4._o they_o approve_v read_v they_o give_v pag._n 569._o l._n 18._o be_v of_o truth_n read_v be_v oracle_n of_o truth_n pag._n 570._o l._n 18._o anno_fw-la 1520._o read_v 1620._o pag._n 576._o l._n 17.18_o if_o it_o be_v think_v schism_n read_v if_o be_v think_v it_o be_v schism_n pag._n 582._o over_o against_o the_o 9_o line_n add_v in_o the_o margin_n caluin_n ep_v 141._o pag._n 589._o l._n 13_o after_o the_o word_n by_o s._n augustine_n add_v c_o and_o in_o the_o line_n follow_v instead_o of_o c_o put_v d_o and_o over_o against_o it_o in_o the_o margin_n add_v optat._n l._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la pag._n 590._o l._n 10._o it_o not_o read_z be_v not_o pag._n 597._o l._n 26.27_o have_v right_a read_v have_v no_o right_n pag._n 602._o l._n 3._o bring_v read_v be_v ibid._n lin_v 31._o gregory_n the_o three_o read_v gregory_n the_o second_o ibid._n l._n 34._o gregory_n send_v he_o read_z gregory_z the_o three_o send_v he_o pag._n 615._o l._n 20._o acknowledge_v read_v acknowledge_v pag._n 618._o l._n 28._o record_n read_v record_n pa._n 629._o l._n 18._o yeath_n read_v death_n pag._n 655._o l._n 11._o be_v easy_o read_v be_v not_o easy_a pag._n 664._o l._n 17._o kingdom_n read_v kingdone_n pag._n 667._o l._n 18._o and_o radius_fw-la read_v andradius_fw-la pag._n 668._o l._n 31._o sin_v a_o monk_n read_v siud_v a_o monk_n pag._n 672._o l._n 28._o with_o read_v which_o pag._n 702._o l._n 1._o object_v read_v obey_v pag._n 714._o l._n 30._o be_v multitude_n read_v be_v the_o multitude_n pag._n 719._o l._n 23._o the_o arian_n that_o of_o ephesus_n read_v the_o arian_n reject_v the_o council_n of_o